Selected quad for the lemma: sense_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
sense_n church_n part_n visible_a 1,675 5 9.3112 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A62456 Just weights and measures that is, the present state of religion weighed in the balance, and measured by the standard of the sanctuary / according to the opinion of Herbert Thorndike. Thorndike, Herbert, 1598-1672. 1662 (1662) Wing T1051; ESTC R19715 213,517 274

There are 27 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

heresy_n and_o schism_n to_o be_v now_o mere_a bugbear_n to_o fright_v child_n with_o but_o will_v any_o of_o they_o own_o any_o of_o the_o sect_n which_o be_v shut_v out_o of_o the_o church_n for_o heretic_n or_o schismatic_n from_o the_o time_n of_o our_o lord_n till_o the_o time_n of_o constantine_n for_o true_a christian_n whether_o they_o will_v or_o they_o will_v not_o be_v not_o considerable_a for_o if_o all_o good_a christian_n then_o do_v then_o do_v all_o good_a christian_n own_o the_o visible_a unity_n of_o the_o church_n and_o there_o be_v as_o great_a a_o consent_n of_o christian_n in_o the_o visible_a unity_n of_o the_o church_n as_o in_o the_o truth_n of_o christianity_n save_v this_o difference_n that_o all_o christian_n good_a and_o bad_a true_a and_o false_a agree_v in_o the_o truth_n of_o christianity_n only_o those_o that_o be_v neither_o heretic_n nor_o schismatic_n in_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n let_v no_o man_n mistake_v this_o evidence_n as_o if_o so_o great_a a_o truth_n it_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n visible_a by_o the_o law_n of_o it_o be_v read_v only_o in_o two_o or_o three_o text_n of_o scripture_n they_o who_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o argue_v of_o such_o matter_n as_o these_o aught_o to_o know_v that_o the_o law_n of_o all_o commonwealth_n when_o first_o they_o be_v found_v be_v the_o will_n of_o their_o ruler_n according_a to_o that_o measure_n of_o power_n whereby_o they_o rule_v therefore_o if_o our_o lord_n trust_v his_o disciple_n and_o their_o successor_n with_o the_o rule_n of_o his_o church_n he_o trust_v they_o also_o to_o make_v law_n for_o the_o rule_v of_o it_o provide_v that_o they_o tend_v to_o enforce_v not_o to_o avoid_v those_o law_n which_o he_o in_o person_n have_v leave_v they_o as_o christian_n for_o disciple_n that_o be_v christian_n he_o leave_v they_o actual_o not_o actual_o member_n of_o his_o church_n as_o not_o yet_o actual_o form_v though_o virtual_o found_v in_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n which_o he_o leave_v his_o disciple_n these_o law_n be_v as_o visible_a as_o the_o law_n of_o any_o kingdom_n or_o commonwealth_n that_o be_v or_o ever_o be_v be_v visible_a i_o do_v not_o own_o the_o pope_n canon_n law_n to_o have_v the_o force_n of_o oblige_v we_o for_o i_o maintain_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o usurpation_n in_o the_o power_n by_o which_o it_o be_v make_v as_o well_o as_o a_o great_a deal_n of_o abuse_n in_o make_v the_o law_n give_v by_o our_o lord_n of_o no_o effect_n by_o the_o matter_n of_o it_o but_o i_o maintain_v the_o pope_n canon_n law_n and_o the_o same_o be_v to_o be_v say_v of_o that_o canon_n law_n whereby_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n now_o govern_v in_o the_o eastern_a church_n to_o be_v derive_v from_o those_o rule_n whereby_o the_o disciple_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o their_o successor_n govern_v the_o primitive_a church_n in_o unity_n and_o this_o no_o less_o evident_a than_o the_o christianity_n of_o this_o time_n be_v to_o be_v derive_v from_o the_o christianity_n of_o that_o time_n for_o as_o the_o present_a law_n of_o the_o church_n be_v but_o the_o corruption_n of_o the_o primitive_a no_o more_o be_v the_o present_a christianity_n whether_o of_o the_o reformation_n or_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o the_o corruption_n of_o the_o primitive_a for_o why_o shall_v i_o make_v nice_a to_o say_v it_o pretend_v all_o reformation_n to_o be_v nothing_o but_o the_o restore_n of_o primitive_a christianity_n and_o to_o that_o end_n of_o such_o law_n in_o the_o church_n as_o may_v be_v the_o mean_n to_o restore_v it_o among_o those_o law_n there_o be_v one_o which_o oblige_v those_o who_o good_n the_o law_n which_o endow_v the_o church_n with_o consecrate_a good_n have_v give_v up_o themselves_o to_o god_n for_o christian_n to_o give_v up_o their_o good_n to_o maintain_v the_o assembly_n of_o the_o church_n for_o the_o service_n of_o god_n wherein_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n consist_v estate_v the_o power_n of_o dispense_n the_o maintenance_n thereof_o upon_o the_o ruler_n of_o the_o church_n this_o provision_n how_o little_a soever_o notice_n many_o take_v of_o it_o who_o pretend_v to_o understand_v the_o scripture_n begin_v first_o in_o our_o lord_n and_o the_o disciple_n that_o attend_v upon_o he_o continual_o for_o it_o be_v evident_a by_o the_o gospel_n that_o those_o disciple_n which_o do_v not_o attend_v upon_o he_o continual_o furnish_v by_o their_o contribution_n a_o stock_n whereupon_o they_o subsist_v judas_n you_o know_v be_v trust_v with_o it_o and_o be_v the_o first_o that_o commit_v sacrilege_n in_o rob_v the_o poor_a of_o church_n good_n for_o the_o poor_a can_v not_o have_v attend_v upon_o the_o doctrine_n of_o our_o lord_n have_v they_o not_o be_v provide_v for_o by_o the_o rich_a of_o his_o disciple_n and_o the_o good_n of_o the_o church_n be_v still_o the_o patrimony_n of_o the_o poor_a for_o the_o same_o reason_n that_o be_v provide_v for_o they_o may_v attend_v upon_o god_n service_n therefore_o the_o reason_n be_v the_o same_o when_o the_o christian_n at_o jerusalem_n give_v up_o their_o land_n and_o their_o good_n to_o maintain_v the_o church_n in_o contitinual_a attendance_n upon_o the_o service_n of_o god_n when_o the_o corinthian_n maintain_v their_o feast_n of_o love_n when_o the_o christian_n afterward_o build_v those_o church_n and_o lay_v those_o land_n to_o they_o which_o eusebius_n say_v be_v pull_v down_o and_o confiscate_v by_o diocletian_a be_v restore_v by_o constantine_n when_o christian_a kingdom_n and_o state_n by_o a_o civil_a law_n endow_v the_o church_n with_o tithe_n and_o glebe_n and_o mansion_n a_o thing_n as_o general_a as_o christianity_n no_o people_n no_o country_n be_v know_v where_o the_o church_n be_v ever_o settle_v without_o maintenance_n estate_v upon_o it_o by_o the_o church_n itself_o at_o the_o least_o if_o not_o by_o the_o law_n of_o the_o country_n over_z and_o above_o the_o form_n of_o government_n in_o every_o commonwealth_n be_v state_v scripture_n how_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n be_v signify_v by_o the_o scripture_n upon_o certain_a power_n wherein_o sovereignty_n consist_v which_o lawyer_n and_o philosopher_n call_v sometime_o jura_n majestatis_fw-la here_o you_o have_v in_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o church_n the_o power_n of_o admit_v into_o and_o exclude_v out_o of_o the_o church_n the_o power_n of_o give_v law_n to_o the_o church_n the_o power_n of_o dispense_n the_o exchequer_n which_o god_n have_v provide_v for_o the_o church_n and_o in_o fine_a the_o power_n of_o propagate_a these_o right_n to_o their_o successor_n whereby_o it_o pretend_v not_o to_o be_v a_o commonwealth_n because_o christianity_n pretend_v to_o maintain_v civil_a power_n and_o the_o right_n of_o this_o world_n in_o the_o same_o hand_n and_o upon_o the_o same_o term_n which_o it_o find_v but_o it_o appear_v to_o be_v a_o visible_a society_n found_v by_o god_n under_o the_o name_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n upon_o the_o command_n of_o hold_v communion_n therewith_o to_o which_o he_o oblige_v all_o christian_n and_o all_o those_o scripture_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n that_o mention_v any_o of_o these_o right_n signify_v no_o less_o when_o the_o meaning_n of_o they_o be_v measure_v by_o that_o rule_n without_o which_o there_o be_v no_o mean_n to_o determine_v the_o sense_n of_o any_o scripture_n that_o be_v questionable_a and_o the_o same_o be_v signify_v by_o those_o scripture_n which_o mention_n sometime_o several_a church_n sometime_o one_o church_n contain_v all_o christian_n and_o all_o church_n for_o the_o part_n that_o be_v particular_a church_n be_v visible_a body_n the_o whole_a must_v needs_o be_v understand_v to_o be_v a_o visible_a church_n the_o practice_n of_o all_o christian_n own_v a_o obligation_n in_o point_n of_o right_n to_o maintain_v the_o power_n which_o the_o scripture_n for_o the_o most_o part_n only_a mention_n as_o matter_n of_o fact_n determine_v they_o to_o signify_v more_o than_o they_o express_v as_o for_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n the_o call_n of_o the_o testament_n how_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n gentile_n to_o be_v one_o new_a people_n of_o god_n with_o the_o jew_n that_o shall_v believe_v be_v but_o foretell_v in_o they_o by_o prophecy_n and_o therefore_o the_o visible_a unity_n of_o the_o church_n consist_v of_o they_o can_v be_v otherwise_o declare_v in_o they_o then_o by_o that_o correspondence_n in_o which_o the_o church_n answer_v the_o ancient_a people_n of_o god_n the_o unity_n thereof_o be_v the_o unity_n of_o a_o commonwealth_n maintain_v itself_o by_o force_n of_o arm_n in_o the_o possession_n of_o the_o land_n of_o promise_n in_o which_o god_n have_v place_v they_o upon_o condition_n to_o live_v by_o his_o law_n the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n consist_v
enable_v recusant_n to_o take_v the_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n pretence_n of_o the_o pre-eminence_n of_o his_o church_n in_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n have_v give_v this_o crown_n just_a occasion_n to_o declare_v itself_o supreme_a head_n or_o supreme_a governor_n for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v not_o in_o word_n but_o in_o power_n as_o st._n paul_n say_v in_o all_o cause_n and_o over_o all_o person_n as_o well_o ecclesiastical_a as_o civil_a but_o the_o capacity_n of_o several_a sense_n in_o word_n that_o signify_v humane_a matter_n capable_a of_o so_o great_a a_o latitude_n by_o their_o nature_n seem_v to_o have_v produce_v out_o of_o this_o act_n a_o sect_n of_o erastians_n very_o dangerous_a to_o christianity_n as_o immediate_o deny_v any_o ordinance_n of_o god_n for_o the_o visible_a unity_n of_o his_o church_n which_o be_v a_o article_n of_o our_o creed_n but_o by_o consequence_n show_v all_o how_o they_o may_v enjoy_v the_o benefit_n of_o civil_a law_n in_o a_o state_n that_o profess_v christianity_n without_o believe_v any_o more_o of_o christianity_n than_o they_o please_v this_o capacity_n be_v restrain_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n reign_n by_o her_o injunction_n by_o the_o article_n of_o religion_n by_o a_o act_n of_o parliament_n not_o to_o signisie_v the_o abolish_n or_o the_o disclaim_n of_o ecclesiastical_a power_n in_o part_n or_o in_o whole_a and_o to_o such_o effect_n that_o it_o be_v acknowledge_v now_o in_o book_n write_v on_o purpose_n by_o one_o party_n of_o recusant_n that_o they_o may_v free_o take_v the_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n save_v the_o scruple_n that_o may_v remain_v of_o offend_v those_o recusant_n who_o think_v that_o they_o may_v not_o take_v it_o and_o i_o can_v by_o no_o mean_n marvel_v at_o it_o for_o they_o who_o do_v open_o profess_v that_o unlimited_a obedience_n to_o the_o pope_n in_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n which_o he_o require_v how_o can_v they_o swear_v the_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n be_v think_v to_o abjure_v his_o ecclesiastical_a power_n in_o england_n the_o word_n of_o the_o oath_n be_v restrain_v by_o law_n to_o disclaim_v only_o the_o temporal_a effect_n of_o it_o but_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o not_o only_o the_o unlimited_a power_n of_o the_o pope_n involve_v what_o further_a ambiguity_n that_o oath_n involve_v but_o all_o authority_n of_o a_o general_n council_n of_o the_o western_a church_n whereof_o the_o pope_n be_v and_o aught_o to_o be_v the_o chief_a member_n according_a to_o the_o premise_n may_v just_o seem_v to_o be_v disclaim_v by_o other_o word_n of_o the_o same_o oath_n and_o that_o whereas_o the_o pope_n usurp_v not_o only_o upon_o the_o crown_n but_o upon_o the_o clergy_n of_o this_o kingdom_n all_o those_o usurpation_n be_v by_o the_o act_n of_o resumption_n under_o h●nry_n the_o viii_o invest_v in_o the_o crown_n so_o that_o when_o the_o oath_n declare_v to_o maintain_v all_o right_n and_o pre-eminences_a annex_v to_o the_o crown_n you_o may_v understand_v that_o maintenance_n which_o a_o subject_a owe_v his_o sovereign_n against_o those_o that_o pretend_v to_o force_v his_o claim_n from_o he_o but_o you_o may_v also_o understand_v that_o maintenance_n which_o a_o divine_a owe_v the_o truth_n in_o assert_v the_o title_n of_o the_o crown_n to_o all_o right_n vest_v in_o it_o which_o he_o that_o believe_v that_o some_o right_n of_o the_o church_n be_v invest_v in_o the_o crown_n ought_v not_o to_o undertake_v though_o as_o a_o subject_a for_o preserve_v the_o state_n of_o his_o king_n and_o country_n he_o be_v tie_v to_o maintain_v all_o the_o claim_v of_o the_o crown_n against_o all_o the_o enemy_n of_o it_o now_o if_o a_o oath_n require_v by_o the_o sovereign_a power_n bear_v two_o minister_v what_o scandal_n the_o take_n of_o it_o in_o the_o true_a sense_n minister_v sense_n in_o the_o proper_a signification_n of_o the_o word_n which_o be_v more_o ordinary_a than_o it_o be_v believe_v the_o subject_n may_v undergo_v it_o in_o that_o sense_n which_o truth_n and_o right_n warrant_v and_o so_o in_o regard_n the_o pope_n not_o content_a with_o his_o regular_a authority_n in_o the_o church_n pretend_v temporal_a power_n in_o dispose_v of_o the_o domini●n●_n which_o he_o disclaim_v communion_n with_o beside_o absolute_a power_n in_o mater●_n of_o religion_n it_o be_v lawful_a to_o swear_v that_o he_o ought_v to_o have_v no_o manner_n of_o power_n in_o this_o kingdom_n as_o thing_n stand_v ti●l_v he_o depart_v from_o claim_n so_o unjust_a but_o there_o be_v appearance_n that_o the_o misunderstanding_n of_o it_o have_v produce_v a_o opinion_n destructive_a to_o one_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n to_o the_o be_v of_o any_o visible_a church_n as_o found_v by_o god_n and_o beside_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a that_o all_o they_o who_o be_v call_v to_o this_o oath_n by_o law_n can_v ever_o be_v able_a to_o distinguish_v that_o sense_n wherein_o they_o ought_v from_o that_o wherein_o they_o ought_v not_o to_o take_v it_o and_o therefore_o of_o necessity_n the_o law_n give_v great_a offence_n and_o that_o offence_n be_v the_o sin_n of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o call_v for_o god_n vengeance_n upon_o it_o which_o though_o all_o be_v involve_v in_o yet_o in_o the_o other_o world_n the_o account_n will_v lie_v upon_o they_o that_o may_v change_v it_o and_o do_v not_o now_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o all_o recusant_n believe_v not_o the_o pope_n allegiance_n that_o this_o oat●_n ought_v to_o be_v enlarge_v to_o all_o pretence_n in_o religion_n that_o abridge_v allegiance_n temporal_a power_n nor_o think_v themselves_o bind_v to_o execute_v such_o act_n as_o the_o bull_n of_o pius_fw-la quintus_fw-la against_o queen_n elizabeth_n those_o that_o do_v not_o how_o shall_v they_o be_v liable_a to_o capital_a punishment_n which_o the_o law_n in_o some_o case_n inflict_v for_o how_o shall_v they_o be_v take_v for_o the_o enemy_n of_o their_o country_n otherwise_o on_o the_o contrary_a i_o have_v show_v by_o the_o trouble_v of_o frankford_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o reformation_n that_o there_o be_v then_o the_o same_o difference_n of_o opinion_n among_o they_o that_o hold_v with_o the_o reformation_n about_o obedience_n to_o sovereign_n obey_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o that_o the_o same_o difference_n of_o opinion_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o late_a trouble_n appear_v by_o the_o aspersion_n of_o popery_n upon_o his_o late_a majesty_n allege_v to_o justify_v the_o war_n against_o he_o whereby_o it_o appear_v that_o they_o of_o that_o opinion_n do_v undergo_v the_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n and_o allegiance_n as_o provide_v only_o against_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n and_o the_o claim_v of_o it_o think_v themselves_o enable_v notwithstanding_o the_o same_o to_o limit_v their_o allegiance_n to_o that_o which_o their_o religion_n shall_v allow_v and_o therefore_o there_o be_v great_a reason_n why_o the_o kingdom_n shall_v enact_v a_o new_a oath_n extend_v the_o original_a allegiance_n of_o all_o subject_n to_o all_o case_n in_o which_o experience_n have_v show_v or_o reason_n may_v foresee_v that_o religion_n may_v be_v pretend_v to_o abridge_v the_o obligation_n of_o allegiance_n this_o i_o be_o encourage_v here_o to_o declare_v by_o the_o late_a act_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o scotland_n establish_v for_o the_o future_a the_o form_n of_o a_o oath_n whereby_o the_o obligation_n of_o allegiance_n i●_n extend_v to_o the_o renounce_n not_o only_o of_o any_o claim_n for_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n but_o of_o all_o pretence_n whatsoever_o whether_o upon_o the_o account_n of_o religion_n or_o of_o civil_a right_n of_o abridge_n the_o obligation_n of_o it_o for_o though_o i_o neither_o maintain_v nor_o find_v fault_n with_o the_o term_n which_o it_o use_v yet_o the_o agreement_n and_o the_o difference_n between_o the_o case_n of_o both_o kingdom_n as_o it_o evidence_v to_o all_o the_o necessity_n so_o it_o determine_v to_o they_o that_o be_v to_o understand_v the_o state_n of_o both_o the_o agreement_n and_o the_o difference_n of_o that_o which_o ought_v to_o be_v provide_v and_o see_v it_o be_v the_o true_a consequence_n of_o the_o common_a christianity_n that_o enable_v the_o kingdom_n to_o do_v this_o because_o suppose_v as_o it_o do_v the_o state_n of_o this_o world_n it_o can_v extend_v to_o the_o alter_n of_o it_o there_o be_v great_a reason_n why_o a_o divine_a shall_v be_v allow_v to_o say_v it_o not_o enter_v upon_o other_o consideration_n wherein_o religion_n be_v not_o concern_v for_o in_o the_o next_o place_n to_o the_o bring_n in_o of_o a_o new_a provision_n the_o conscience_n of_o the_o kingdom_n be_v best_a discharge_v the_o scandal_n that_o may_v be_v occasion_v remove_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n prevent_v or_o appease_v by_o the_o secular_a power_n allow_v these_o interpretation_n to_o pass_v without_o contradiction_n that_o may_v enable_v all_o estate_n to_o depose_v it_o
with_o judgement_n as_o well_o as_o with_o truth_n and_o righteousness_n we_o have_v this_o evidence_n for_o that_o which_o i_o say_v that_o the_o authority_n of_o those_o divine_n of_o this_o church_n that_o have_v declare_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n with_o public_a allowance_n be_v now_o allege_v by_o the_o papist_n themselves_z to_o infer_v that_o the_o matter_n of_o it_o be_v lawful_a as_o capable_a of_o the_o sense_n which_o they_o declare_v now_o the_o bound_n of_o reformation_n be_v visible_a by_o the_o faith_n church_n the_o extent_n of_o secular_a power_n in_o reform_v the_o church_n and_o the_o law_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n the_o extent_n of_o secular_a power_n in_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n and_o over_o ecclesiastical_a person_n and_o therefore_o in_o the_o reform_n of_o they_o preserve_v ecclesiastical_a power_n in_o person_n that_o have_v it_o by_o the_o sound_n of_o the_o church_n from_o god_n can_v remain_v invisible_a for_o in_o the_o first_o place_n there_o can_v be_v no_o question_n that_o the_o sovereign_n as_o a_o sovereign_n be_v to_o maintain_v his_o own_o right_n by_o such_o mean_n as_o he_o find_v meet_v against_o all_o usurpation_n under_o pretence_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o authority_n of_o it_o for_o the_o common_a christianity_n assure_v he_o that_o all_o such_o usurpation_n be_v contrary_a to_o it_o and_o beside_o as_o a_o christian_a sovereign_a it_o be_v his_o inheritance_n to_o be_v a_o member_n of_o the_o church_n and_o a_o protector_n of_o all_o his_o subject_n in_o the_o same_o right_n therefore_o all_o christian_a sovereign_n be_v bear_v advocate_n and_o patron_n of_o the_o faith_n and_o of_o the_o right_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o if_o by_o lapse_n of_o time_n they_o be_v go_v to_o decay_v if_o by_o any_o express_a act_n they_o have_v be_v infringe_v it_o lie_v in_o they_o to_o restore_v their_o subject_n and_o themselves_o to_o those_o right_n be_v bring_v into_o evidence_n by_o the_o authority_n and_o credit_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n but_o see_v the_o determine_n of_o the_o matter_n of_o ecclesiastical_a law_n as_o well_o as_o of_o controversy_n of_o faith_n belong_v to_o those_o that_o have_v authority_n in_o the_o church_n by_o the_o foundation_n of_o it_o of_o necessity_n the_o fit_v of_o the_o present_a law_n of_o every_o church_n to_o those_o which_o the_o whole_a church_n have_v be_v rule_v by_o from_o the_o beginning_n as_o the_o difference_n which_o may_v appear_v in_o the_o state_n of_o those_o body_n to_o which_o they_o be_v give_v shall_v require_v will_n by_o virtue_n of_o god_n law_n belong_v to_o those_o that_o have_v such_o authority_n by_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n and_o upon_o these_o term_n the_o right_a of_o secular_a power_n in_o church_n matter_n be_v accumulative_a and_o not_o destructive_a to_o the_o right_n of_o the_o church_n and_o upon_o these_o term_n only_o the_o sovereign_n be_v justifiable_a at_o the_o great_a day_n of_o judgement_n in_o thing_n that_o may_v be_v do_v amiss_o in_o reform_v the_o church_n chap._n xxi_o the_o pretence_n of_o infallibility_n make_v the_o breach_n unreconcilable_a so_o do_v the_o pretence_n of_o perspicuity_n in_o the_o scripture_n the_o trial_n must_v suppose_v the_o catholic_n church_n the_o fanatickes_n further_o from_o the_o truth_n of_o christianity_n than_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o consequence_n of_o their_o principle_n worse_o than_o that_o of_o infallibility_n the_o point_n of_o truth_n in_o the_o middle_n between_o both_o how_o salvation_n be_v concern_v in_o the_o mater_fw-la of_o free_a will_n and_o grace_n salvation_n concern_v in_o the_o sacrament_n upon_o the_o same_o term_n the_o abuse_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o the_o five_o sacrament_n the_o grace_n of_o ordination_n the_o reformation_n pretend_v no_o less_o abuse_v on_o the_o other_o side_n the_o point_n of_o reformation_n in_o the_o mean_a between_o both_o the_o superstition_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o superstition_n of_o the_o puritan_n why_o the_o pope_n can_v be_v antichrist_n how_o it_o be_v just_a to_o reform_v without_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n and_o upon_o supposition_n of_o the_o premise_n for_o which_o i_o conceive_v unreconcilable_a the_o pretence_n of_o infallibility_n make_v the_o breach_n unreconcilable_a i_o have_v produce_v competent_a evidence_n i_o proceed_v to_o take_v the_o balance_n in_o hand_n and_o to_o put_v the_o extreme_n into_o the_o scale_n that_o i_o may_v put_v it_o to_o the_o conscience_n of_o all_o that_o be_v resolve_v to_o prefer_v truth_n before_o faction_n or_o prejudice_n where_o the_o point_n of_o reformation_n lie_v upon_o term_n of_o right_n and_o how_o near_o the_o public_a power_n of_o this_o kingdom_n be_v bind_v to_o come_v to_o it_o in_o this_o case_n when_o a_o uniformity_n in_o religion_n be_v to_o be_v settle_v by_o law_n for_o the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o the_o first_o place_n then_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o present_a church_n be_v to_o be_v hold_v ●or_a a_o error_n of_o pernicious_a consequence_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n for_o it_o submit_v all_o the_o part_n of_o christianity_n to_o the_o passion_n and_o interest_n of_o person_n that_o shall_v be_v for_o the_o present_a in_o power_n to_o sway_v those_o matter_n wherein_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v concern_v it_o be_v a_o thing_n manifest_a in_o the_o world_n that_o though_o that_o which_o concern_v all_o in_o point_n of_o religion_n be_v to_o be_v treat_v by_o all_o yet_o that_o which_o be_v treat_v by_o all_o be_v conclude_v always_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o a_o few_o so_o thing_n pass_v when_o council_n be_v frequent_v the_o freedom_n of_o council_n be_v interrupt_v and_o the_o present_a church_n accept_v for_o infallible_a the_o see_v of_o rome_n will_v of_o necessity_n be_v the_o present_a church_n and_o the_o passion_n and_o interest_n thereof_o will_v have_v as_o much_o power_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n as_o those_o passion_n and_o interest_n can_v allow_v and_o stand_v with_o what_o the_o effect_n thereof_o may_v be_v i_o need_v not_o argue_v to_o those_o that_o profess_v the_o reformation_n upon_o that_o account_n only_o thus_o far_o they_o may_v seem_v excusable_a that_o there_o be_v no_o act_n with_o force_n of_o law_n tie_v all_o of_o that_o profession_n to_o maintain_v it_o infallibility_n may_v be_v claim_v for_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o that_o be_v true_a and_o it_o may_v be_v claim_v for_o the_o present_a church_n which_o be_v false_a they_o that_o pretend_v to_o reduce_v we_o to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n will_v spoil_v their_o own_o market_n if_o they_o shall_v distinguish_v thus_o therefore_o they_o plead_v infallibility_n without_o distinguish_v on_o the_o other_o side_n there_o be_v as_o much_o difference_n between_o the_o scripture_n so_o do_v the_o pretence_n of_o perspicuity_n in_o the_o scripture_n sufficiency_n of_o the_o scripture_n for_o the_o salvation_n of_o all_o and_o the_o clear_a evidence_n of_o all_o that_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v know_v for_o the_o salvation_n of_o all_o to_o all_o in_o the_o scripture_n the_o one_o be_v as_o true_a and_o the_o other_o as_o false_a as_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o present_a church_n be_v false_a and_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v true_a and_o to_o appeal_v to_o the_o scripture_n alone_o when_o the_o sense_n of_o they_o only_o be_v questionable_a be_v to_o declare_v that_o we_o will_v submit_v to_o no_o other_o trial_n but_o our_o own_o sense_n as_o they_o who_o declare_v the_o present_a church_n infallible_a can_v never_o depart_v from_o any_o thing_n which_o once_o it_o have_v declare_v for_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o they_o who_o appeal_v to_o the_o scripture_n church_n the_o trial_n must_v suppose_v the_o catholic_n church_n alone_o have_v before_o this_o appeal_n declare_v themselves_o in_o the_o point_n of_o difference_n between_o the_o reformation_n and_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v declare_v themselves_o tie_v in_o conscience_n to_o stand_v to_o that_o sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n upon_o which_o they_o ground_n their_o opinion_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o difference_n what_o mean_v then_o can_v remain_v to_o bring_v that_o to_o a_o trial_n which_o cause_v division_n upon_o these_o term_n but_o to_o acknowledge_v one_o catholic_n church_n which_o our_o creed_n profess_v and_o by_o consequence_n to_o submit_v our_o sense_n of_o all_o scripture_n that_o remain_v in_o question_n all_o difference_n in_o doctrine_n all_o law_n of_o the_o church_n to_o be_v determine_v according_a to_o the_o sense_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n that_o be_v within_o the_o bound_n of_o it_o for_o to_o proceed_v to_o divide_v the_o church_n still_o into_o more_o and_o more_o party_n and_o communion_n till_o we_o have_v lose_v the_o sense_n of_o any_o obligation_n to_o hold_v communion_n with_o
as_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o plead_v for_o the_o abolish_n of_o the_o law_n of_o this_o kingdom_n for_o as_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o our_o ecclesiastical_a law_n be_v the_o law_n of_o the_o kingdom_n so_o will_v i_o not_o open_v my_o mouth_n for_o improve_n they_o be_v it_o not_o to_o make_v they_o the_o law_n of_o god_n only_o true_a church_n the_o content_n chap._n i._n if_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v a_o true_a church_n reformation_n be_v the_o restore_n of_o that_o which_o have_v be_v if_o the_o pope_n be_v antichrist_n and_o the_o papist_n idolater_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n no_o true_a church_n if_o no_o visible_a church_n than_o no_o sin_n of_o schism_n antichrist_n may_v be_v a_o idolater_n but_o can_v be_v the_o head_n of_o a_o church_n though_o it_o be_v idolatry_n to_o worship_v the_o host_n yet_o to_o kneel_v at_o the_o communion_n will_v be_v holy_a that_o which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n profess_v be_v not_o idolatry_n if_o it_o be_v a_o true_a church_n they_o that_o separate_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o idolater_n be_v thereby_o schismatic_n before_o god_n pag._n 2_o chap._n ii_o the_o supposition_n of_o antichrist_n and_o idolatry_n prejudicial_a to_o the_o truth_n the_o supposition_n of_o one_o visible_a church_n the_o ground_n of_o communion_n as_o well_o within_o the_o reformation_n as_o in_o the_o whole_a church_n what_o the_o romish_a missionary_n get_v by_o the_o charge_n of_o heresy_n and_o the_o pretence_n of_o infallibility_n what_o we_o get_v by_o the_o charge_n of_o idolatry_n and_o antichrist_n immoderate_a charge_n vain_a on_o both_o side_n the_o charge_n of_o schism_n on_o both_o side_n moderate_a as_o to_o the_o church_n the_o sin_n of_o schism_n as_o to_o god_n horrible_a the_o schism_n of_o the_o donatist_n in_o charge_v the_o catholic_n to_o be_v apostate_n the_o sad_a consequence_n of_o that_o schism_n 8_o chap._n iii_o they_o that_o hold_v by_o one_o visible_a church_n be_v to_o own_o the_o consequence_n of_o it_o nothing_o to_o be_v change_v but_o upon_o that_o ground_n we_o can_v be_v the_o same_o church_n with_o that_o which_o be_v otherwise_o though_o that_o which_o shall_v be_v settle_v will_v find_v advocate_n civil_a law_n of_o religion_n to_o be_v change_v till_o this_o rule_n be_v attain_v the_o beginning_n and_o rise_v of_o our_o difference_n the_o present_a state_n of_o they_o what_o term_n of_o agreement_n with_o the_o presbyterian_o we_o ought_v to_o allow_v the_o law_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n the_o standard_n of_o all_o change_n our_o present_a case_n be_v ●ot_n the_o case_n of_o our_o forefather_n the_o act_n of_o henry_n viii_o no_o act_n of_o our_o forefather_n in_o religion_n imperfection_n of_o law_n in_o religion_n no_o imputation_n to_o our_o forefather_n the_o pretence_n of_o tender_a conscience_n be_v no_o rule_n it_o serve_v papist_n as_o well_o as_o puritan_n 15_o chap._n iu_o erastians_n can_v acknowledge_v no_o visible_a church_n found_v by_o god_n their_o opinion_n enable_v sovereign_n to_o persecute_v god_n truth_n by_o god_n law_n persecute_v the_o truth_n be_v the_o use_n of_o a_o power_n which_o no_o sovereign_a can_v have_v if_o any_o sovereign_n may_v punish_v for_o the_o religion_n which_o he_o profess_v then_o be_v subject_n bind_v to_o renounce_v christ_n if_o the_o sovereign_n command_v it_o no_o offence_n but_o charity_n in_o declare_v the_o true_a ground_n of_o reconcilement_n or_o punishment_n why_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v declare_v the_o declare_v of_o it_o no_o offence_n to_o superior_n 24_o chap._n v._o we_o have_v the_o same_o evidence_n for_o the_o visible_a unity_n of_o the_o church_n as_o for_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o scripture_n the_o church_n found_v upon_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n visible_a by_o the_o law_n of_o it_o the_o law_n which_o endow_v the_o church_n with_o consecrate_a good_n how_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n be_v signify_v by_o the_o scripture_n how_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n 29_o chap._n vi_o how_o far_o the_o scripture_n be_v clear_a to_o be_v understand_v of_o themselves_o tradition_n limit_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n difference_n between_o the_o tradition_n of_o faith_n and_o ritual_a tradition_n the_o difference_n between_o heresy_n and_o schism_n the_o dependence_n of_o church_n evidence_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n the_o form_n of_o this_o dependence_n throughout_o the_o roman_a empire_n no_o exception_n to_o be_v make_v to_o it_o for_o the_o british_a church_n episcopacy_n by_o this_o form_n inviolable_a in_o all_o opinion_n and_o the_o church_n a_o stand_a synod_n the_o church_n visible_a by_o dis●●●ing_v heretic_n and_o schismatic_n the_o breach_n that_o have_v come_v to_o pas●_n evidence_n the_o same_o 35_o chap._n vii_o reformation_n to_o be_v bound_v by_o that_o wherein_o the_o visible_a church_n agree_v no_o change_n without_o regard_n to_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n regular_a authority_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o mean_n of_o unity_n absolute_a of_o schism_n how_o we_o be_v visible_o one_o with_o the_o only_a church_n of_o god_n reform_v without_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n 45_o chap_n viii_o what_o mean_v god_n have_v provide_v private_a christian_n to_o discern_v the_o true_a church_n the_o duty_n of_o all_o estate_n for_o the_o reunite_v of_o schism_n the_o ground_n and_o extent_n of_o secular_a power_n in_o church_n matter_n how_o the_o conscience_n of_o sovereign_a power_n be_v discharge_v maintain_v the_o church_n 49_o chap._n ix_o difficulty_n in_o receive_v the_o fanatic_n into_o this_o church_n how_o their_o position_n destroy_v the_o faith_n absolute_a predestination_n to_o glory_n destructive_a to_o christianity_n justify_v faith_n include_v the_o profession_n of_o christianity_n the_o nature_n of_o faith_n according_a to_o the_o scripture_n show_v the_o same_o so_o do_v the_o state_n of_o that_o question_n which_o st._n paul_n dispute_v the_o conse●●_n of_o the_o church_n ●erein_o with_o the_o ground_n of_o it_o the_o sense_n of_o this_o church_n 54_o chap._n x._o why_o justify_v faith_n be_v not_o trust_v in_o god_n through_o christ_n of_o justification_n according_a to_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n of_o justification_n according_a to_o socinus_n wherein_o his_o heresy_n consist_v how_o the_o misunderstanding_n of_o satisfaction_n and_o imputation_n occasion_v it_o upon_o what_o ground_n he_o be_v to_o be_v refute_v the_o help_n of_o grace_n grant_v i●_n consideration_n of_o christ_n obedien●●_n and_o therefore_o they_o infer_v original_a sin_n by_o the_o fall_n of_o adam_n wherein_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n consist_v that_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n be_v forfeit_v by_o heinous_a sin_n the_o danger_n of_o the_o contrary_a position_n according_a to_o the_o ground_n of_o it_o 63_o chap._n xi_o what_o law_n of_o god_n it_o be_v that_o may_v be_v fulfil_v by_o a_o christian_n of_o do_v more_o than_o god_n law_n require_v whether_o our_o lord_n give_v a_o new_a law_n or_o not_o of_o the_o satisfaction_n and_o merit_n of_o christian_a work_n original_a sin_n be_v not_o adam_n sin_n impute_v to_o his_o posterity_n wherein_o original_a sin_n consist_v what_o original_a righteousness_n signify_v what_o good_a the_o unregenerate_a be_v able_a to_o do_v by_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n 73_o chap._n xii_o upon_o what_o term_n that_o which_o be_v possible_a may_v become_v future_a the_o difference_n between_o necessity_n antecedent_n and_o consequent_a the_o difference_n between_o freedom_n from_o necessity_n and_o from_o bondage_n freedom_n from_o necessity_n always_o require_v indetermination_n not_o always_o indifference_n the_o object_n determine_v the_o will_n save_v the_o freedom_n of_o it_o whence_o the_o certainty_n of_o future_a contingency_n arise_v how_o this_o appear_v in_o the_o scripture_n god_n no_o cause_n of_o sin_n according_a to_o the_o scripture_n concern_v the_o middle_a knowledge_n of_o god_n 80_o chap._n xiii_o no_o absolute_a predestination_n to_o glory_n predestination_n to_o grace_n absolute_a how_o glory_n be_v the_o end_n of_o grace_n in_o what_o term_n the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n stand_v as_o concern_v this_o point_n 86_o chap._n fourteen_o duty_n of_o a_o christian_a as_o a_o christian_a and_o as_o a_o member_n of_o the_o church_n how_o anabaptist_n deny_v the_o faith_n how_o they_o be_v to_o be_v reconcile_v with_o the_o church_n their_o error_n in_o rebaptise_v for_o want_n of_o dip_v what_o concern_v salvation_n in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n how_o the_o element_n be_v consecrate_v into_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n according_a to_o gregory_n nyssene_n the_o consequence_n hereof_o in_o the_o error_n concern_v the_o eucharist_n how_o the_o eucharist_n a_o sacrifice_n and_o yet_o no_o ground_n for_o private_a mass_n the_o eucharist_n not_o the_o sermon_n the_o chief_a office_n of_o god_n service_n 91_o
be_v allow_v to_o forejudge_v my_o opinion_n because_o it_o make_v our_o reconcilement_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n easy_a than_o they_o will_v have_v it_o for_o if_o division_n in_o the_o church_n without_o evident_a and_o valuable_a cause_n be_v a_o sin_n to_o god_n it_o will_v certain_o be_v the_o sin_n of_o the_o kingdom_n to_o bear_v they_o out_o in_o it_o by_o state_v our_o reformation_n upon_o undue_a ground_n for_o the_o term_n of_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v according_a to_o the_o ground_n of_o it_o which_o be_v either_o invisible_a or_o inconsiderable_a in_o comparison_n of_o the_o benefit_n of_o unity_n must_v needs_o translate_v some_o part_n of_o the_o blame_n to_o rest_v upon_o that_o side_n which_o exceed_v and_o therefore_o to_o excuse_v my_o freedom_n in_o publish_v that_o declare_v why_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v declare_v which_o follow_v let_v no_o man_n grudge_v i_o this_o plea_n for_o myself_o at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n that_o be_v convict_v that_o our_o agreement_n can_v be_v acceptable_a to_o god_n but_o upon_o the_o consequence_n of_o those_o two_o supposition_n according_a to_o that_o which_o follow_v i_o be_o not_o at_o rest_n till_o i_o have_v say_v it_o can_v there_o be_v peace_n have_v by_o compound_v the_o interest_n of_o two_o party_n without_o provide_v for_o the_o interest_n of_o our_o common_a christianity_n in_o those_o two_o article_n what_o joy_n can_v a_o christian_a expect_v of_o that_o which_o shall_v be_v purchase_v at_o so_o unconscionable_a a_o rate_n here_o be_v nothing_o say_v but_o that_o which_o have_v be_v say_v when_o arbitrary_a power_n may_v have_v make_v it_o a_o pretence_n for_o persecution_n have_v the_o interest_n of_o usurper_n allow_v it_o it_o be_v a_o short_a view_n of_o that_o which_o i_o have_v publish_v heretofore_o present_v to_o those_o that_o may_v desire_v to_o see_v in_o one_o prospect_n what_o be_v the_o true_a consequence_n of_o it_o in_o the_o compose_n of_o those_o difference_n that_o remain_v still_o on_o foot_n and_o the_o danger_n of_o be_v involve_v in_o the_o crime_n of_o schism_n before_o god_n oblige_v i_o to_o declare_v that_o opinion_n which_o be_v not_o declare_v may_v render_v i_o liable_a to_o that_o charge_n in_o god_n sight_n therefore_o there_o be_v no_o offence_n to_o superior_n in_o declare_v it_o the_o superior_n the_o declare_v of_o it_o no_o offence_n to_o superior_n law_n of_o kingdom_n go_v by_o a_o rule_n that_o be_v make_v of_o such_o metal_n as_o may_v bend_v and_o be_v fit_v to_o the_o body_n which_o they_o be_v to_o rule_v only_o they_o be_v to_o aim_v at_o a_o inflexible_a rule_n of_o god_n truth_n which_o be_v the_o inheritance_n of_o every_o christian_a and_o therefore_o he_o that_o see_v it_o make_v crooked_a be_v bind_v to_o set_v it_o straight_o this_o be_v not_o to_o say_v what_o public_a authority_n shall_v do_v but_o what_o it_o shall_v intend_v to_o do_v a_o thing_n necessary_a to_o be_v say_v when_o there_o be_v those_o who_o will_v have_v it_o intend_v that_o which_o it_o ought_v not_o to_o do_v in_o fine_a the_o difficulty_n and_o danger_n of_o our_o case_n seem_v to_o supersede_n for_o the_o present_a the_o rule_n of_o obedience_n in_o the_o church_n chap._n v._n we_o have_v the_o same_o evidence_n for_o the_o visible_a unity_n of_o the_o church_n as_o for_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o scripture_n the_o church_n found_v upon_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n visible_a by_o the_o law_n of_o it_o the_o law_n which_o endow_v the_o church_n with_o consecrate_a good_n how_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n be_v signify_v by_o the_o scripture_n how_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n scripture_n we_o have_v the_o same_o evidence_n for_o the_o visible_a unity_n of_o the_o church_n a●_n for_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o scripture_n i_o say_v then_o that_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n signify_v nothing_o unless_o it_o signify_v the_o visible_a unity_n of_o communion_n in_o the_o outward_a office_n of_o god_n service_n not_o only_o the_o inusible_a unity_n of_o the_o heart_n in_o faith_n and_o charity_n unless_o the_o church_n be_v found_v by_o god_n for_o a_o outward_a society_n visible_a to_o the_o common_a reason_n of_o man_n not_o only_o for_o a_o invisible_a number_n the_o unity_n whereof_o only_o his_o own_o invisible_a wisdom_n inward_o design_v and_o i_o say_v it_o because_o i_o conceive_v i_o have_v prove_v it_o by_o the_o same_o evidence_n upon_o which_o we_o accept_v the_o scripture_n for_o the_o word_n of_o god_n upon_o which_o we_o hold_v our_o common_a christianity_n for_o i_o have_v show_v that_o we_o believe_v the_o scripture_n for_o the_o scripture_n the_o matter_n of_o faith_n for_o the_o motive_n of_o faith_n there_o relate_v that_o be_v we_o hold_v those_o thing_n which_o the_o scripture_n relate_v sufficient_a to_o oblige_v all_o the_o people_n of_o god_n afore_o christ_n to_o be_v jew_n all_o the_o people_n of_o the_o world_n after_o christ_n to_o be_v christian_n this_o in_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o reason_n oblige_v a_o man_n to_o be_v a_o christian_n for_o in_o the_o nature_n and_o kind_n of_o a_o effective_a cause_n i_o do_v not_o suppose_v much_o less_o grant_v that_o any_o thing_n be_v sufficient_a much_o less_o effectual_a without_o god_n spirit_n ●ut_v if_o a_o unbeliever_n shall_v ask_v i_o why_o i_o believe_v that_o to_o be_v true_a which_o be_v true_a i_o grant_v sufficient_a to_o oblige_v i_o to_o believe_v it_o will_v not_o serve_v my_o turn_n to_o say_v that_o i_o find_v it_o write_v in_o the_o scripture_n so_o long_o as_o the_o question_n be_v why_o i_o believe_v the_o scripture_n my_o answer_n must_v be_v that_o the_o consent_n of_o all_o christian_n in_o submit_v to_o the_o gospel_n which_o they_o will_v not_o have_v do_v have_v they_o not_o know_v the_o motive_n to_o be_v true_a for_o which_o they_o do_v it_o assure_v i_o as_o much_o that_o they_o be_v true_a as_o if_o i_o have_v see_v the_o thing_n do_v which_o move_v they_o to_o believe_v especial_o be_v as_o much_o convict_v by_o the_o light_n of_o reason_n and_o nature_n that_o christianity_n go_v beyond_o judaisme_n for_o advance_v the_o service_n of_o god_n and_o goodness_n as_o that_o judaisme_n go_v beyond_o the_o religion_n either_o of_o pagan_n or_o mahumetan_n for_o this_o be_v the_o reason_n why_o we_o believe_v that_o must_v be_v key_n the_o church_n found_v upon_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n allege_v by_o all_o that_o will_v allege_v any_o reason_n to_o unbeliever_n it_o must_v needs_o have_v the_o same_o force_n in_o evidence_v the_o sense_n that_o we_o allow_v it_o in_o evidence_v the_o credit_n of_o the_o scripture_n if_o the_o consent_n of_o all_o christian_n in_o submit_v to_o christianity_n upon_o motive_n record_v in_o the_o scripture_n assure_v i_o that_o they_o be_v true_a and_o therefore_o the_o scripture_n the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o christianity_n the_o only_a religion_n by_o which_o we_o can_v be_v save_v then_o the_o consent_n of_o all_o christian_n in_o own_v the_o obligation_n of_o hold_v visible_a communion_n with_o the_o church_n be_v to_o assure_v i_o that_o it_o be_v god_n ordinance_n for_o the_o act_n or_o the_o act_n of_o our_o lord_n upon_o which_o the_o church_n be_v found_v i_o allege_v the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n describe_v by_o the_o effect_n of_o bind_v and_o lose_v and_o to_o that_o effect_n grant_v to_o st._n peter_n mat._n xvi_o 18_o 19_o to_o the_o disciple_n assemble_v after_o the_o resurrection_n john_n xx._n 19-23_a in_o the_o term_n of_o remit_v and_o retain_v sin_n to_o the_o church_n mat._n xviii_o 15-18_a in_o the_o same_o term_n as_o to_o st._n peter_n to_o the_o effect_n of_o render_v he_o that_o obey_v not_o a_o heathen_a man_n or_o a_o publican_n to_o he_o that_o will_v be_v a_o christian_n here_o you_o have_v a_o certain_a power_n deposit_v with_o certain_a person_n the_o effect_n whereof_o be_v visible_a in_o the_o succession_n of_o person_n derive_v the_o authority_n which_o they_o claim_v from_o the_o visible_a act_n of_o those_o person_n which_o be_v here_o trust_v with_o it_o and_o in_o the_o maintenance_n of_o visible_a communion_n among_o true_a christian_n by_o exclude_v the_o false_a it_o be_v true_a heretic_n and_o schismatic_n exclude_v themselves_o out_o of_o the_o church_n for_o they_o will_v be_v the_o church_n themselves_o if_o they_o can_v tell_v how_o but_o it_o be_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n that_o oblige_v christian_n to_o avoid_v they_o as_o the_o jew_n to_o who_o our_o lord_n speak_v do_v then_o avoid_v heathen_a man_n and_o publican_n and_o it_o oblige_v by_o declare_v they_o heretic_n and_o schismatic_n i_o know_v there_o be_v those_o that_o will_v have_v the_o imputation_n of_o
of_o all_o nation_n and_o maintain_v all_o s●ates_n in_o their_o right_n of_o this_o world_n pretend_v not_o to_o any_o power_n of_o this_o world_n to_o maintain_v itself_o by_o it_o become_v visible_a by_o the_o free_a will_n of_o christian_n believe_v it_o a_o piece_n of_o their_o christianity_n to_o live_v &_o die_v member_n of_o one_o visible_a church_n the_o unity_n of_o the_o jew_n state_n tend_v to_o a_o temporal_a end_n of_o enjoy_v the_o land_n of_o promise_n answer_v not_o the_o invisible_a unity_n of_o christian_a soul_n but_o the_o visible_a unity_n of_o a_o catholic_n church_n according_a to_o that_o rate_n in_o which_o the_o law_n answer_v the_o gospel_n and_o so_o be_v this_o point_n of_o christianity_n no_o less_o clear_o deliver_v by_o the_o old_a testament_n than_o other_o point_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n be_v chap._n vi_o how_o far_o the_o scripture_n be_v clear_a to_o be_v understand_v of_o themselves_o tradition_n limit_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n difference_n between_o the_o tradition_n of_o faith_n and_o ritual_a tradition_n the_o difference_n between_o heresy_n and_o schism_n the_o dependence_n of_o church_n evidence_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n the_o form_n of_o this_o dependence_n throughout_o the_o roman_a empire_n no_o exception_n to_o be_v make_v to_o it_o for_o the_o british_a church_n episcopacy_n by_o this_o form_n inviolable_a in_o all_o opinion_n and_o the_o church_n a_o stand_a synod_n the_o church_n visible_a by_o disow_a haereticke_n and_o schismatickes_n the_o breach_n that_o have_v come_v to_o pass_v evidence_n the_o same_o for_o though_o all_o that_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v know_v for_o the_o salvation_n themselves_o how_o far_o the_o scripture_n be_v clear_a to_o be_v understand_v of_o themselves_o of_o all_o christian_n be_v not_o only_o sufficient_o but_o abundant_o contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n yet_o how_o clear_o there_o lay_v down_o depend_v upon_o the_o purpose_n for_o which_o god_n declare_v that_o he_o give_v the_o several_a part_n of_o it_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o god_n intend_v to_o veil_v the_o new_a testament_n in_o the_o old_a and_o to_o reveal_v the_o old_a testament_n by_o the_o new_a therefore_o christianity_n can_v be_v clear_o deliver_v in_o the_o old_a testament_n till_o our_o lord_n be_v to_o leave_v the_o world_n he_o declare_v not_o the_o condition_n of_o christianity_n by_o which_o we_o be_v save_v he_o declare_v not_o that_o which_o he_o declare_v when_o he_o be_v to_o leave_v the_o world_n to_o wit_n that_o it_o be_v thenceforth_o to_o consist_v in_o undertake_v to_o profess_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o holy_a trinity_n and_o to_o live_v by_o christ_n precept_n though_o one_o life_n lie_v upon_o it_o for_o he_o declare_v not_o the_o promise_n of_o send_v the_o holy_a ghost_n till_o he_o be_v ready_a to_o leave_v the_o world_n and_o therefore_o the_o baptism_n of_o christ_n by_o which_o christian_n do_v make_v that_o procession_n which_o save_v we_o be_v not_o institute_v till_o his_o departure_n and_o though_o our_o lord_n have_v clear_o preach_v the_o precept_n of_o christian_a life_n from_o the_o beginning_n yet_o be_v the_o visible_a estate_n of_o his_o mystical_a body_n the_o church_n as_o well_o as_o the_o invisible_a estate_n of_o particular_a member_n dark_o figure_v and_o typify_v not_o only_o by_o the_o parable_n of_o the_o gospel_n but_o as_o well_o by_o that_o which_o befall_v he_o as_o by_o that_o which_o he_o do_v during_o the_o time_n of_o his_o preach_n therefore_o neither_o be_v christianity_n clear_o deliver_v by_o the_o gospel_n to_o they_o to_o who_o the_o apostle_n write_v their_o epistle_n the_o substance_n of_o christianity_n must_v needs_o be_v know_v for_o they_o have_v be_v make_v christian_n upon_o the_o profess_v of_o it_o but_o their_o epistle_n therefore_o suppose_v it_o and_o therefore_o can_v pretend_v to_o deliver_v it_o beside_o the_o great_a part_n of_o they_o be_v spend_v in_o prove_v that_o we_o be_v save_v by_o christianity_n out_o of_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o therefore_o by_o that_o correspondence_n in_o which_o the_o law_n answer_v the_o gospel_n the_o church_n the_o synagogue_n and_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n the_o land_n of_o promise_n and_o though_o our_o lord_n open_v his_o disciple_n heart_n thus_o to_o understand_v the_o scripture_n yet_o be_v not_o all_o that_o shall_v be_v save_v able_a to_o make_v out_o this_o correspondence_n the_o profess_v and_o perform_v of_o that_o christianity_n whereby_o they_o be_v save_v not_o require_v it_o therefore_o neither_o be_v the_o apostle_n writing_n clear_a in_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n but_o suppose_v the_o knowledge_n of_o that_o christianity_n whereby_o we_o be_v save_v nor_o absolute_o clear_a but_o to_o those_o that_o be_v able_a to_o make_v out_o that_o correspondence_n without_o this_o limitation_n it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v grant_v that_o all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n be_v clear_a to_o all_o that_o seek_v salvation_n by_o the_o scripture_n alone_o for_o what_o mark_n be_v there_o extant_a in_o the_o scripture_n to_o distinguish_v that_o which_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n from_o that_o which_o be_v not_o nor_o be_v there_o any_o inconvenience_n in_o all_o this_o to_o they_o that_o be_v scripture_n tradition_n limit_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n content_a to_o lay_v prejudice_n aside_o and_o to_o see_v that_o which_o they_o can_v but_o see_v for_o it_o will_v appear_v by_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o apostle_n that_o they_o commit_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christianity_n to_o they_o who_o they_o trust_v with_o the_o sound_n and_o govern_v of_o the_o church_n for_o the_o instruct_n of_o they_o that_o be_v to_o be_v baptize_v and_o form_v into_o church_n whereof_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v to_o consist_v so_o that_o as_o they_o to_o who_o the_o apostle_n write_v have_v receive_v their_o christianity_n from_o those_o that_o be_v so_o trust_v be_v to_o limit_v the_o meaning_n of_o their_o writing_n within_o that_o faith_n which_o they_o have_v receive_v so_o be_v all_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n still_o to_o be_v confine_v within_o that_o which_o the_o church_n from_o the_o beginning_n have_v receive_v by_o their_o hand_n which_o be_v not_o to_o make_v any_o man_n lord_n of_o any_o man_n faith_n for_o this_o tradition_n of_o the_o faith_n be_v before_o the_o very_a be_v of_o the_o church_n because_o whosoever_o become_v a_o christian_a and_o so_o a_o member_n of_o the_o church_n it_o be_v suppose_v that_o he_o undertake_v the_o same_o and_o therefore_o be_v in_o force_n before_o there_o be_v any_o church_n it_o can_v depend_v upon_o any_o authority_n to_o be_v claim_v by_o the_o church_n and_o the_o evidence_n for_o it_o be_v the_o same_o ground_n into_o which_o the_o reason_n of_o believe_v resolve_v the_o consent_n of_o all_o christian_n which_o as_o it_o can_v not_o have_v be_v preserve_v and_o obtain_v have_v it_o not_o be_v require_v to_o make_v a_o man_n a_o member_n of_o that_o church_n which_o by_o profess_v it_o stand_v visible_o distinct_a from_o all_o that_o profess_v i●_n not_o so_o since_o as_o much_o as_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n have_v be_v already_o declare_v by_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o church_n to_o confine_v all_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n within_o that_o which_o all_o the_o church_n every_o where_o at_o all_o time_n have_v receive_v can_v make_v no_o man_n lord_n over_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n but_o there_o be_v a_o vast_a distance_n between_o this_o tradition_n of_o faith_n tradition_n difference_n between_o the_o tradition_n of_o faith_n and_o ritual_a tradition_n and_o other_o tradition_n which_o may_v have_v proceed_v from_o that_o authority_n and_o trust_v for_o sound_v the_o church_n which_o our_o lord_n leave_v with_o his_o apostle_n and_o they_o with_o the_o church_n for_o that_o be_v the_o condition_n upon_o which_o all_o christian_n be_v save_v remain_v always_o the_o same_o neither_o to_o be_v increase_v nor_o diminish_v till_o the_o world_n end_n but_o the_o production_n of_o ecclesiastical_a power_n vest_v in_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n can_v be_v no_o more_o than_o the_o limit_v of_o circumstance_n according_a to_o which_o the_o public_a service_n of_o god_n be_v to_o be_v perform_v and_o those_o power_n exercise_v which_o god_n have_v grant_v the_o church_n for_o the_o maintain_n of_o unity_n in_o serve_v god_n according_a to_o that_o christianity_n which_o our_o lord_n teach_v christianity_n be_v concern_v in_o they_o but_o two_o way_n the_o first_o when_o they_o be_v so_o far_o from_o advance_v the_o service_n of_o god_n which_o christianity_n require_v that_o it_o be_v impair_v and_o destroy_v by_o corruption_n in_o they_o the_o second_o when_o a_o part_n of_o the_o church_n proceed_v to_o a_o change_n in_o they_o upon_o pretence_n that_o
so_o it_o be_v though_o indeed_o it_o be_v otherwise_o the_o first_o be_v the_o plea_n of_o the_o reformation_n against_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o second_o the_o plea_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n against_o they_o as_o to_o this_o point_n of_o tradition_n and_o the_o issue_n be_v the_o same_o that_o be_v to_o be_v try_v between_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o those_o that_o stand_v at_o this_o distance_n from_o it_o for_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o common_a christianity_n the_o breach_n of_o it_o will_v be_v chargeable_a upon_o that_o side_n which_o make_v such_o a_o change_n as_o the_o rest_n have_v not_o reason_n to_o embrace_v if_o the_o pretence_n thereof_o be_v either_o not_o evident_a or_o not_o sufficient_a the_o fault_n be_v in_o they_o if_o both_o in_o those_o who_o refuse_v to_o join_v in_o i●_n the_o rule_n and_o custom_n and_o rite_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v call_v tradition_n be_v not_o command_v because_o good_a but_o be_v good_a because_o command_v and_o therefore_o even_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v of_o this_o kind_n may_v cease_v to_o oblige_v by_o the_o change_n that_o may-succeed_n in_o the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n for_o which_o they_o be_v provide_v instance_n hereof_o record_v in_o the_o scripture_n have_v be_v produce_v they_o therefore_o that_o break_n from_o the_o church_n upon_o any_o point_n schism_n the_o difference_n between_o haeresic_n and_o schism_n of_o the_o tradition_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v before_o the_o church_n as_o be_v requisite_a to_o make_v a_o man_n a_o member_n of_o the_o church_n be_v proper_o call_v heretic_n for_o if_o they_o only_o disbeleeve_v in_o the_o heart_n they_o may_v be_v count_v heretic_n to_o god_n but_o that_o be_v nothing_o to_o the_o church_n of_o which_o we_o now_o speak_v but_o they_o that_o will_v not_o stand_v to_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n in_o matter_n subject_a to_o it_o be_v schismatic_n for_o those_o thing_n to_o which_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n extend_v be_v the_o matter_n of_o schism_n not_o that_o this_o difference_n be_v always_o observe_v for_o many_o time_n the_o name_n of_o heresy_n extend_v to_o all_o sect_n which_o man_n choice_n not_o the_o will_n of_o god_n creat_v but_o because_o there_o be_v that_o difference_n visible_a in_o the_o mater_fw-la of_o christianity_n which_o many_o time_n appropriate_v the_o common_a name_n of_o heresy_n to_o the_o most_o eminent_a that_o separate_a upon_o matter_n of_o faith_n these_o thing_n be_v here_o premise_v to_o make_v way_n for_o the_o evidence_n which_o i_o tender_v for_o the_o visible_a unity_n of_o the_o church_n from_o the_o consent_n of_o all_o christian_n he_o that_o stick_v at_o any_o point_n of_o it_o may_v have_v recourse_n to_o the_o proof_n which_o i_o have_v make_v in_o due_a place_n take_v all_o therefore_o here_o for_o grant_v but_o i_o will_v advance_v another_o assumption_n tend_v ●o_o set_v the_o church_n the_o dependence_n of_o church_n evid●n●eth_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n same_o evidence_n in_o better_a light_n by_o state_v the_o form_n in_o which_o the_o whole_a church_n from_o the_o apostle_n have_v always_o be_v govern_v without_o repeat_v the_o proof_n whereby_o it_o appear_v a_o church_n then_o in_o the_o sense_n of_o all_o christian_n before_o the_o reformation_n be_v the_o body_n of_o christian_n contain_v in_o a_o city_n and_o the_o territory_n of_o it_o for_o the_o government_n of_o such_o a_o one_o the_o respective_a authority_n of_o the_o apostle_n convey_v by_o the_o overt_a act_n of_o their_o ordination_n be_v visible_o vest_v in_o a_o bishop_n in_o a_o number_n of_o presbyter_n for_o his_o advice_n and_o assistance_n and_o in_o deacon_n attend_v upon_o they_o and_o upon_o the_o execute_n of_o their_o order_n i_o say_v the_o respective_a authority_n of_o the_o apostle_n because_o as_o less_o city_n be_v subject_a to_o great_a in_o civil_a government_n so_o have_v the_o church_n of_o less_o city_n always_o depend_v upon_o church_n of_o great_a city_n throughout_o christendom_n rome_n alex●ndria_n antiochia_n be_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o christianity_n visible_a head_n of_o these_o great_a resort_n in_o church_n government_n which_o the_o council_n of_o n●c●●_n make_v subject_a to_o they_o by_o canon_n law_n for_o the_o future_a the_o eminence_n of_o other_o city_n over_o their_o inferior_a church_n appear_v in_o the_o record_n of_o the_o church_n as_o soon_o as_o there_o be_v any_o mention_n of_o they_o to_o make_v it_o appea●_n in_o these_o church_n and_o in_o the_o governor_n of_o they_o the_o whole_a authority_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v vest_v for_o they_o constitute_v the_o church_n in_o process_n of_o time_n the_o government_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n empire_n the_o form_n of_o this_o dependence_n throughout_o the_o roman_a empire_n be_v mould_v anew_o under_o constantine_n otherwise_o than_o it_o have_v be_v by_o augustus_n but_o this_o new_a model_n be_v design_v by_o adrian_n it_o make_v the_o chief_a city_n of_o the_o chief_a quarter_n of_o the_o empire_n the_o residence_n of_o the_o chief_a commander_n of_o the_o army_n with_o civil_a jurisdiction_n respective_a which_o civil_a jurisdiction_n constan●ine_n leave_v they_o when_o he_o take_v from_o they_o their_o command_n over_o the_o army_n carthage_n for_o africa_n milane_n for_o italy_n that_o part_n which_o be_v not_o under_o rome_n trier_n for_o gaul_n thessalonica_n for_o illyricum_n ephesus_n for_o asia_n caesarea_n cappadociae_fw-la for_o pontus_n the_o pre-eminence_n of_o the_o church_n be_v as_o visible_a over_o the_o church_n of_o their_o inferior_a city_n in_o the_o record_n of_o the_o church_n as_o the_o pre-eminence_n of_o the_o city_n in_o the_o record_n of_o the_o empire_n and_o according_a the_o course_n of_o all_o humane_a affair_n must_v not_o this_o preeminence_a of_o necessity_n be_v further_o limit_v enlarge_v or_o abate_v in_o process_n of_o time_n whether_o by_o write_v law_n or_o by_o silent_a custom_n for_o the_o effect_n hereof_o i_o present_v to_o your_o consideration_n the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n whick_z i_o take_v to_o be_v the_o great_a advantage_n that_o ever_o lawful_o and_o by_o regular_a mean_n accrue_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n towards_o that_o greatness_n which_o since_o it_o have_v irregular_o obtain_v for_o it_o be_v visible_a that_o they_o be_v the_o mean_n to_o extend_v the_o superiority_n thereof_o over_o illyricum_n which_o continue_v till_o the_o eastern_a empire_n have_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o jealousy_n lay_v that_o whole_a jurisdiction_n under_o the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n the_o increase_n of_o which_o church_n upon_o the_o seat_v of_o the_o empire_n at_o that_o city_n the_o ground_n which_o i_o allege_v for_o the_o superiority_n of_o all_o church_n as_o it_o have_v be_v unjust_o oppose_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n so_o it_o be_v just_o own_a by_o those_o who_o protest_v against_o the_o usurpation_n of_o it_o they_o that_o will_v except_v britain_n out_o of_o this_o rule_n upon_o the_o church_n no_o exception_n to_o be_v make_v to_o it_o for_o the_o british_a church_n act_n of_o the_o welsh_a bishop_n refuse_v austin_n the_o monk_n for_o their_o head_n shall_v consider_v that_o st._n gregory_n set_v he_o over_o the_o saxon_a church_n which_o he_o have_v found_v according_a to_o rule_n transgress_v the_o rule_n in_o set_v he_o over_o the_o welsh_a church_n for_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o apostle_n maintain_v every_o nation_n to_o be_v govern_v by_o their_o own_o bishop_n which_o the_o welsh_a have_v reason_n then_o to_o insist_v upon_o because_o of_o the_o jealousy_n which_o appear_v from_o the_o saxon_n of_o their_o encroach_a upon_o the_o nation_n if_o their_o bishop_n shall_v be_v own_v for_o the_o head_n of_o the_o welsh_a church_n set_v this_o case_n aside_o the_o rest_n of_o that_o little_a remembrance_n that_o remain_v concern_v the_o british_a church_n testify_v the_o like_a respect_n from_o it_o to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o appear_v from_o the_o church_n of_o gaul_n spain_n and_o africa_n of_o which_o there_o be_v no_o cause_n to_o doubt_v that_o they_o first_o receive_v their_o christianity_n from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o if_o so_o they_o do_v then_o be_v there_o reason_n to_o conclude_v that_o they_o owe_v it_o the_o respect_n which_o be_v due_a to_o their_o mother_n church_n but_o that_o they_o either_o owe_v it_o or_o show_v it_o the_o respect_n of_o a_o subject_a to_o the_o sovereign_n which_o none_o be_v challenge_v none_o at_o all_o as_o for_o illyricum_n which_o show_v the_o same_o respect_n after_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n it_o can_v be_v think_v to_o have_v owe_v it_o before_o because_o it_o receive_v not_o christianity_n synod_n episcopacy_n by_o this_o form●_n
church_n a_o justifiable_a nay_o a_o commendable_a custom_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n may_v come_v out_o of_o use_n without_o any_o violence_n any_o fraud_n any_o purpose_n to_o defeat_v that_o pious_a intent_n to_o which_o such_o a_o custom_n be_v instrumental_a they_o who_o have_v rather_o break_v with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n then_o comply_v with_o a_o change_n which_o the_o change_n of_o time_n and_o the_o state_n of_o thing_n by_o time_n have_v bring_v to_o pass_v shall_v be_v in_o my_o opinion_n schismatickes_n but_o what_o if_o our_o fanatickes_n shall_v be_v content_a silent_o to_o return_v into_o the_o communion_n of_o this_o church_n as_o presbyterian_o what_o if_o it_o appear_v that_o they_o be_v bullion_n haereticke_n for_o the_o position_n they_o profess_v though_o not_o stamp_v by_o conviction_n and_o contumacy_n succeed_v and_o the_o declaration_n of_o the_o church_n upon_o that_o it_o will_v not_o then_o be_v clear_a how_o we_o shall_v wipe_v off_o that_o imputation_n to_o which_o we_o shall_v be_v liable_a by_o the_o perpetual_a rule_n of_o god_n church_n for_o receive_v and_o communicate_v with_o those_o that_o have_v stamp_v themselves_o schismatickes_n as_o schismatickes_n those_o that_o have_v declare_v themselves_o bullion_n haereticke_n as_o bullion_n haereticke_n without_o any_o ground_n to_o presume_v that_o they_o be_v change_v certain_o we_o can_v allege_v the_o catholic_n church_n for_o ourselves_o but_o it_o will_v rise_v in_o judgementagainst_a we_o when_o we_o stick_v not_o to_o it_o what_o condition_n we_o fall_v into_o if_o we_o submit_v to_o the_o church_n schism_n regular_a authority_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o mean_n of_o unity_n absolute_a of_o schism_n of_o rome_n upon_o term_n of_o conquest_n it_o be_v manifest_a enough_o for_o wherein_o the_o pope_n have_v not_o limit_v his_o own_o authority_n by_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n we_o render_v ourselves_o to_o the_o mercy_n of_o it_o missionary_n shall_v have_v do_v a_o great_a effect_n if_o they_o persuade_v we_o that_o we_o be_v schismatickes_n unless_o we_o return_v to_o those_o abuse_n which_o we_o see_v with_o our_o eye_n which_o we_o handle_v with_o our_o hand_n they_o be_v so_o evident_a and_o so_o gross_a well_o may_v they_o persuade_v simple_a christian_n that_o they_o must_v first_o resolve_v which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n and_o then_o what_o be_v true_a and_o what_o be_v false_a in_o religion_n by_o that_o which_o the_o church_n so_o resolve_v teach_v this_o be_v a_o great_a deal_n the_o short_a way_n then_o to_o justify_v the_o particular_n which_o by_o this_o mean_n they_o impose_v upon_o they_o and_o if_o we_o render_v ourselves_o upon_o these_o term_n what_o remain_v but_o that_o we_o admit_v whatsoever_o the_o pope_n shall_v impose_v for_o the_o future_a though_o we_o know_v that_o the_o power_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n extend_v not_o to_o it_o which_o how_o shall_v we_o answer_v at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n either_o for_o ourselves_o or_o those_o that_o depend_v upon_o we_o and_o yet_o i_o have_v show_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v and_o aught_o to_o have_v when_o it_o shall_v please_v to_o hear_v reason_n a_o regular_a pre-eminence_n over_o the_o rest_n of_o christendom_n in_o these_o western_a part_n and_o he_o that_o be_v able_a to_o judge_v and_o willing_a to_o consider_v shall_v find_v that_o pre-eminence_n the_o only_a reasonable_a mean_n to_o preserve_v so_o great_a a_o body_n in_o unity_n and_o therefore_o i_o count_v not_o myself_o tie_v to_o justify_v henry_n the_o viii_o in_o disclaim_v all_o such_o pre-eminence_n when_o it_o be_v enough_o for_o his_o purpose_n to_o disow_v it_o as_o not_o extend_v to_o his_o case_n for_o by_o the_o regular_a constitution_n of_o the_o church_n which_o i_o have_v describe_v if_o the_o pope_n excommunicate_v any_o man_n injust_o he_o do_v it_o in_o his_o own_o wrong_n he_o excommunicate_v himself_o thereby_o from_o all_o that_o shall_v adhere_v to_o he_o who_o he_o excommunicate_v his_o advantage_n be_v only_o this_o if_o more_o adhere_v to_o the_o chief_a church_n then_o to_o the_o less_o for_o which_o though_o there_o be_v regular_o a_o presumption_n yet_o if_o usurpation_n appear_v either_o in_o sentence_v or_o in_o the_o mater_fw-la or_o in_o the_o effect_n of_o the_o sentence_n he_o that_o exceed_v his_o authority_n break_v it_o upon_o he_o that_o exceed_v not_o like_o the_o wave_n of_o the_o sea_n against_o a_o rock_n but_o of_o the_o usurpation_n of_o that_o church_n wherein_o they_o consist_v rome_n how_o we_o be_v visible_o one_o with_o the_o only_a church_n of_o god_n reform_v without_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o by_o what_o mean_v effect_v in_o due_a place_n that_o the_o difference_n may_v be_v visible_a between_o the_o infinite_a and_o the_o regular_a power_n of_o the_o pope_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n what_o i_o have_v say_v of_o this_o point_n i_o must_v say_v of_o all_o matter_n in_o difference_n that_o as_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n can_v hinder_v we_o of_o restore_v ourselves_o to_o the_o primitive_a right_n of_o the_o church_n by_o which_o a_o christian_a kingdom_n due_o may_v maintain_v the_o service_n of_o god_n neither_o consent_v to_o the_o abuse_n which_o other_o church_n maintain_v nor_o break_v with_o they_o in_o other_o matter_n so_o be_v we_o to_o go_v no_o further_o than_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o church_n will_v bear_v we_o out_o for_o if_o we_o make_v new_a and_o private_a conceit_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o sense_n of_o it_o law_n to_o the_o church_n which_o we_o reform_v we_o find_v a_o new_a church_n upon_o that_o christianity_n which_o the_o only_a church_n of_o god_n never_o own_v but_o if_o we_o only_o restore_v that_o which_o by_o abuse_n of_o time_n may_v appear_v to_o have_v come_v to_o decay_v we_o imp_n and_o engraph_v the_o church_n which_o we_o reform_v into_o that_o only_a church_n which_o they_o that_o reform_a not_o succeed_v for_o how_o shall_v we_o depart_v from_o unity_n with_o that_o church_n the_o authority_n whereof_o we_o follow_v in_o the_o change_n which_o we_o make_v if_o therefore_o we_o be_v to_o be_v without_o offence_n to_o jew_n and_o gentile_n and_o to_o the_o church_n of_o god_n as_o st._n paul_n command_v then_o be_v we_o to_o be_v without_o offence_n also_o to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n now_o it_o be_v no_o offence_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o we_o build_v unity_n among_o ourselves_o upon_o a_o opposition_n to_o the_o abuse_n of_o it_o but_o if_o upon_o a_o opposition_n to_o that_o which_o it_o hold_v from_o the_o whole_a church_n we_o give_v they_o cause_n to_o take_v we_o for_o schismatickes_n as_o not_o reverence_v in_o she_o the_o whole_a church_n which_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o hold_v with_o chap._n viii_o what_o mean_v god_n have_v provide_v private_a christian_n to_o discern_v the_o true_a church_n the_o duty_n of_o all_o estate_n for_o the_o reunite_v of_o schism_n the_o ground_n and_o extent_n of_o secular_a power_n in_o church_n matter_n how_o the_o conscience_n of_o sovereign_a power_n be_v discharge_v maintain_v the_o church_n upon_o these_o term_n the_o choice_n of_o religion_n will_v become_v church_n what_o mean_v god_n have_v provide_v private_a christian_n to_o discern_v the_o true_a church_n more_o clear_a which_o otherwise_o must_v become_v far_o more_o doubtful_a by_o the_o settle_n of_o our_o present_a difference_n for_o i_o grant_v it_o a_o thing_n too_o difficult_a for_o every_o christian_a that_o be_v concern_v to_o choose_v his_o communion_n to_o try_v the_o particular_n in_o controversy_n by_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o church_n but_o i_o maintain_v the_o same_o difficulty_n in_o try_v which_o church_n it_o be_v that_o preach_v the_o true_a word_n of_o god_n and_o right_o and_o due_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n which_o other_o will_v have_v the_o mark_n of_o the_o true_a church_n for_o without_o try_v the_o particular_n in_o controversy_n how_o shall_v it_o appear_v where_o the_o word_n be_v preach_v where_o the_o sacrament_n be_v minister_v as_o they_o shall_v be_v and_o how_o shall_v they_o be_v try_v but_o by_o the_o scripture_n expound_v according_a to_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o church_n as_o for_o they_o that_o will_v have_v we_o take_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o present_a church_n to_o be_v infallible_a they_o be_v first_o to_o tell_v we_o upon_o who_o credit_n we_o take_v that_o infallibility_n for_o you_o see_v we_o believe_v not_o the_o present_a church_n that_o it_o be_v the_o church_n to_o wit_n found_v by_o god_n we_o accept_v it_o upon_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n neither_o be_v any_o thing_n infallible_a in_o christianity_n but_o upon_o the_o same_o ground_n it_o be_v not_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o present_a church_n but_o the_o witness_n and_o agreement_n of_o the_o
can_v serve_v for_o his_o discharge_n to_o god_n he_o be_v answerable_a to_o god_n notwithstanding_o any_o such_o advice_n for_o any_o wrong_n that_o the_o privilege_n and_o penalty_n otherwise_o enact_v may_v do_v but_o maintain_v first_o the_o express_a profession_n of_o the_o rule_n hitherto_o establish_v bound_v all_o reformation_n of_o the_o present_a church_n by_o that_o which_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n either_o allow_v or_o require_v then_o maintain_v they_o in_o their_o office_n who_o office_n it_o be_v to_o form_v that_o which_o his_o act_n must_v make_v law_n to_o his_o subject_n there_o will_v need_v no_o more_o for_o his_o discharge_n to_o god_n than_o the_o use_n of_o that_o judgement_n which_o god_n have_v endow_v he_o with_o to_o discern_v whether_o the_o rule_n which_o he_o protect_v be_v due_o apply_v to_o that_o which_o he_o enact_v or_o not_o for_o as_o no_o reason_n can_v be_v excuse_v to_o god_n transgress_v that_o which_o it_o see_v so_o in_o thing_n doubtful_a to_o prefer_v any_o reason_n before_o that_o which_o god_n trust_v in_o the_o matter_n of_o such_o trust_n be_v to_o render_v a_o man_n self_n accountable_a to_o god_n for_o that_o wrong_n which_o may_v be_v do_v for_o which_o otherwise_o those_o that_o be_v trust_v by_o god_n shall_v be_v accountable_a chap._n ix_o difficulty_n in_o receive_v the_o fanatic_n into_o this_o church_n how_o their_o position_n destroy_v the_o faith_n absolute_a praedestination_n to_o glory_n destructive_a to_o christianity_n justify_v faith_n include_v the_o profession_n of_o christianity_n the_o nature_n of_o faith_n according_a to_o the_o scripture_n show_v the_o same_o so_o do_v the_o state_n of_o that_o question_n which_o st_n paul_n dispute_v the_o consent_n of_o the_o church_n herein_o with_o the_o ground_n of_o it_o the_o sense_n of_o this_o church_n but_o i_o must_v now_o profess_v that_o the_o weighty_a point_n in_o reunite_v church_n difficulty_n in_o receive_v the_o fanatic_n into_o this_o church_n the_o breach_n of_o religion_n in_o this_o church_n be_v the_o condition_n upon_o which_o the_o fanatic_n may_v be_v either_o reconcile_v to_o it_o or_o shut_v out_o of_o it_o whether_o with_o free_a exercise_n of_o their_o several_a sect_n or_o under_o certain_a penalty_n as_o recusant_n i_o see_v that_o they_o be_v not_o afraid_a to_o pretend_v a_o further_a liberty_n of_o public_a preacher_n even_o since_o the_o law_n of_o this_o land_n be_v in_o force_n for_o i_o find_v that_o such_o of_o they_o as_o be_v not_o minister_n of_o congregation_n do_v notwithstanding_o style_v themselves_o public_a preacher_n which_o be_v nothing_o else_o then_o to_o pretend_v that_o authority_n from_o the_o secular_a power_n which_o they_o have_v by_o the_o late_a usurpation_n to_o seduce_v as_o many_o of_o his_o majesty_n subject_n as_o they_o can_v to_o their_o conventicle_n but_o that_o i_o will_v say_v nothing_o of_o because_o i_o make_v certain_a account_n that_o whensoever_o we_o come_v to_o any_o settlement_n in_o religion_n they_o will_v find_v that_o their_o pretence_n to_o be_v vain_a that_o which_o i_o insist_v upon_o be_v that_o which_o i_o conceive_v i_o have_v prove_v that_o the_o position_n which_o they_o notorious_o challenge_v be_v downright_a heresy_n want_v only_a conviction_n to_o produce_v either_o conversion_n or_o contumacy_n and_o the_o declaration_n of_o the_o church_n upon_o the_o same_o for_o it_o be_v notorious_a that_o they_o challenge_v the_o present_a endowment_n of_o god_n spirit_n and_o the_o certainty_n of_o salvation_n for_o the_o future_a upon_o no_o further_a consideration_n then_o of_o their_o person_n as_o not_o depend_v upon_o the_o christianity_n which_o they_o either_o profess_v or_o perform_v so_o far_o they_o be_v from_o acknowledge_v that_o it_o depend_v upon_o their_o be_v member_n of_o god_n church_n by_o live_v according_a to_o that_o christianity_n which_o it_o profess_v for_o because_o they_o think_v themselves_o member_n of_o christ_n before_o they_o be_v member_n of_o god_n church_n therefore_o they_o think_v themselves_o enable_v by_o god_n to_o divide_v the_o church_n in_o infinitum_fw-la and_o that_o the_o conventicle_n of_o their_o congregation_n be_v church_n to_o the_o same_o effect_n with_o those_o which_o be_v found_v by_o the_o apostle_n though_o they_o profess_v not_o the_o faith_n though_o they_o renounce_v the_o unity_n of_o one_o visible_a church_n therefore_o they_o open_o allow_v those_o who_o maintain_v that_o god_n can_v see_v no_o sin_n in_o his_o elect_n that_o their_o sin_n be_v pardon_v from_o everlasting_a before_o they_o be_v do_v that_o god_n shall_v not_o judge_v by_o our_o work_n but_o by_o his_o own_o decree_n that_o there_o be_v inspiration_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n without_o the_o word_n though_o not_o against_o it_o for_o dear_a member_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o cream_n of_o christian_n and_o hence_o come_v the_o everlasting_a division_n which_o they_o maintain_v for_o to_o renounce_v those_o bound_n which_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o unity_n thereof_o fix_v be_v enough_o to_o commend_v they_o to_o all_o party_n that_o do_v so_o for_o the_o godly_a in_o fine_a the_o whole_a fry_n of_o this_o error_n resolve_v itself_o in_o two_o position_n that_o god_n praedestinate_v to_o salvation_n mere_o in_o consideration_n of_o man_n person_n and_o not_o of_o any_o christianity_n which_o they_o shall_v be_v find_v to_o have_v profess_v and_o perform_v and_o that_o the_o knowledge_n of_o this_o praedestination_n reveal_v by_o the_o word_n and_o seal_v by_o the_o spirit_n immediate_o not_o suppose_v the_o christianity_n which_o they_o profess_v and_o perform_v be_v that_o faith_n which_o only_o justifi_v i_o can_v say_v that_o the_o presbyterian_o do_v express_o profess_v these_o faith_n how_o their_o position_n destroy_v the_o faith_n position_n for_o they_o have_v a_o express_a confession_n of_o their_o faith_n which_o express_v they_o not_o but_o see_v they_o in_o all_o occasion_n of_o public_a confusion_n render_v themselves_o considerable_a by_o these_o fanatic_n as_o be_v of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o party_n i_o must_v take_v it_o for_o grant_v that_o they_o think_v their_o profession_n reconcileable_a with_o these_o position_n especial_o know_v how_o many_o particular_a divine_n and_o preacher_n of_o that_o party_n have_v maintain_v the_o same_o namely_o all_o that_o maintain_v justify_v faith_n and_o the_o knowledge_n and_o assurance_n of_o a_o man_n salvation_n without_o and_o before_o repentance_n i_o do_v not_o then_o say_v that_o the_o belief_n of_o absolute_a praedestination_n be_v heresy_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n because_o it_o may_v be_v hold_v with_o other_o position_n which_o be_v a_o antidote_n to_o the_o venom_n of_o it_o as_o be_v real_o contradictory_n to_o it_o which_o contradiction_n do_v those_o that_o hold_v it_o perceive_v they_o can_v not_o hold_v it_o for_o this_o contradiction_n suffer_v not_o the_o consequence_n of_o heresy_n to_o take_v effect_n but_o both_o position_n together_o i_o have_v maintain_v to_o be_v downright_a heresy_n neither_o have_v i_o be_v show_v or_o of_o myself_o discover_v any_o reason_n sufficient_a to_o think_v otherwise_o and_o therefore_o i_o must_v continue_v to_o weigh_v by_o my_o own_o weight_n and_o to_o mete_v by_o my_o own_o measure_n for_o that_o the_o ground_n and_o substance_n of_o christianity_n be_v utter_o christianity_n absolute_a praedestination_n to_o glory_n destructive_a to_o christianity_n inconsistent_a with_o the_o decree_n which_o they_o imagine_v be_v manifest_a if_o any_o thing_n can_v be_v manifest_a in_o christianity_n because_o if_o there_o be_v any_o such_o decree_n than_o can_v not_o man_n be_v judge_v at_o the_o last_o day_n as_o judge_v they_o shall_v be_v by_o their_o work_n there_o be_v no_o decree_n of_o god_n that_o shall_v not_o be_v execute_v if_o god_n decree_v from_o everlasting_a to_o give_v glory_n and_o torment_v for_o everlasting_a without_o consideration_n of_o man_n work_n then_o must_v he_o without_o such_o consideration_n give_v it_o in_o time_n for_o otherwise_o he_o shall_v not_o execute_v that_o which_o he_o decree_v and_o indeed_o such_o a_o decree_n can_v no_o way_n be_v undefeasible_a as_o all_o god_n decree_n must_v be_v unless_o god_n determine_v and_o move_v every_o man_n to_o every_o thing_n that_o he_o do_v every_o moment_n of_o his_o life_n upon_o the_o account_n whereof_o he_o shall_v be_v save_v or_o damn_v and_o that_o before_o his_o own_o will_v determine_v or_o move_v itself_o but_o if_o god_n shall_v so_o determine_v and_o move_v man_n will_n than_o will_v the_o tender_a of_o the_o gospel_n be_v a_o mere_a abuse_n and_o a_o mockery_n invite_v mankind_n to_o salvation_n upon_o a_o condition_n which_o unless_o god_n determine_v and_o move_v he_o to_o perform_v he_o can_v if_o he_o do_v he_o can_v but_o perform_v the_o justice_n of_o god_n proceed_n at_o
will_v be_v condemn_v for_o it_o there_o be_v therefore_o a_o three_o signification_n of_o faith_n in_o holy_a scripture_n comprise_v the_o outward_a act_n of_o profess_v as_o well_o as_o the_o inward_a act_n of_o believe_a and_o suppose_v this_o outward_a act_n of_o profession_n limit_v by_o the_o positive_a law_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n according_a to_o which_o signification_n the_o ancient_a church_n count_v not_o christian_n fideles_fw-la faithful_a or_o believer_n till_o they_o be_v baptize_v this_o be_v in_o the_o middle_n between_o the_o other_o two_o for_o as_o belief_n go_v before_o it_o so_o it_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o the_o trust_n and_o confidence_n of_o a_o christian_n and_o this_o therefore_o be_v that_o which_o all_o those_o scripture_n that_o ascribe_v the_o promise_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o faith_n make_v proper_o justify_v faith_n for_o according_a to_o the_o use_n and_o custom_n of_o all_o language_n they_o be_v ascribe_v to_o belief_n bya_n metonymy_a of_o the_o cause_n go_v before_o to_o trust_v and_o confidence_n by_o a_o metonymy_n of_o the_o effect_n follow_v upon_o it_o but_o this_o will_v not_o hold_v till_o we_o pitch_v upon_o that_o which_o come_v between_o both_o as_o that_o which_o qualifi_v a_o christian_a for_o those_o premise_n when_o therefore_o the_o belief_n of_o christ_n gospel_n cause_v a_o man_n to_o take_v up_o christ_n cross_n in_o baptism_n then_o have_v he_o that_o faith_n which_o justifi_v though_o that_o which_o prepare_v to_o it_o and_o that_o which_o ensue_v upon_o it_o be_v honour_v with_o the_o same_o attribute_n for_o be_v so_o near_o of_o kindred_n to_o it_o but_o the_o consideration_n of_o the_o question_n which_o st._n paul_n dispute_v dispute_v so_o do_v the_o state_n of_o that_o question_n which_o st._n paul_n dispute_v visible_a in_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o apostle_n suffer_v no_o doubt_n of_o his_o meaning_n when_o he_o argue_v that_o faith_n alone_o justifi_v it_o be_v as_o clear_a as_o the_o sun_n at_o noon_n that_o all_o his_o dispute_n be_v with_o those_o christian_n who_o have_v submit_v to_o the_o gospel_n can_v not_o conceive_v that_o the_o law_n have_v no_o hand_n in_o justify_v they_o who_o they_o see_v live_v according_a to_o the_o law_n and_o that_o by_o the_o direction_n of_o that_o apostle_n themselves_o for_o the_o gain_n of_o the_o jew_n a_o thing_n which_o they_o dispense_v with_o for_o a_o long_a time_n till_o st._n paul_n be_v constrain_v to_o declare_v against_o it_o as_o root_a up_o the_o necessity_n of_o christianity_n and_o salvation_n by_o it_o alone_o that_o this_o be_v the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n all_o the_o new_a testament_n after_o the_o gospel_n be_v witness_n and_o therefore_o to_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n alone_o be_v with_o st._n paul_n to_o be_v justify_v by_o christianity_n alone_o and_o whereas_o they_o be_v all_o assure_v that_o salvation_n be_v to_o be_v have_v under_o the_o law_n he_o show_v every_o where_o that_o the_o father_n who_o be_v justify_v before_o or_o under_o the_o law_n be_v not_o justify_v by_o the_o law_n but_o by_o the_o gospel_n that_o be_v veil_v under_o it_o notas_fw-la jew_n but_o as_o christian_n and_o therefore_o that_o the_o gentile_n which_o turn_v christian_n be_v save_v by_o the_o same_o grace_n as_o believe_v jew_n for_o as_o no_o work_n which_o they_o be_v able_a to_o do_v by_o the_o light_n and_o strength_n of_o nature_n be_v able_a to_o bring_v those_o that_o be_v without_o the_o law_n to_o the_o state_n of_o god_n grace_n no_o more_o can_v the_o outward_a observation_n of_o moses_n law_n by_o those_o work_n which_o mere_a nature_n be_v able_a to_o produce_v as_o tend_v no_o further_o than_o the_o temporal_a reward_n of_o the_o law_n of_o canaan_n express_o promise_v by_o moses_n law_n render_v man_n acceptable_a to_o god_n for_o the_o reward_n which_o christian_n expect_v in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v but_o by_o heg●sippus_n in_o eusebius_n we_o understand_v that_o the_o gnostic_n teach_v that_o the_o bare_a profession_n of_o christianity_n without_o bear_v the_o cross_n for_o the_o perform_n of_o it_o be_v enough_o to_o save_v those_o that_o shall_v attain_v to_o the_o secret_n which_o they_o teach_v debauch_v and_o deflower_v the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n as_o soon_o as_o st._n james_n be_v dead_a and_o therefore_o see_v that_o can_v not_o be_v do_v in_o a_o moment_n we_o have_v cause_n to_o think_v that_o they_o go_v to_o work_v in_o his_o life_n time_n the_o consideration_n whereof_o show_n that_o st._n james_n in_o argue_v that_o a_o christian_n be_v justify_v by_o work_n and_o not_o by_o faith_n alone_o intend_v to_o teach_v that_o the_o profession_n of_o christianity_n justifi_v not_o when_o it_o be_v not_o perform_v and_o therefore_o st._n paul_n intend_v the_o same_o in_o argue_v that_o a_o christian_n be_v justify_v by_o faith_n alone_o without_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n to_o wit_n that_o he_o be_v justify_v by_o profess_v christianity_n so_o cordial_o and_o with_o so_o good_a a_o conscience_n as_o to_o perform_v it_o and_o for_o this_o sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n there_o be_v as_o current_n and_o as_o it_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o church_n herein_o with_o the_o ground_n of_o it_o general_a a_o consent_n of_o all_o the_o whole_a church_n as_o for_o christianity_n itself_o the_o life_n and_o soul_n whereof_o stand_v in_o it_o show_v i_o any_o author_n approve_v in_o the_o church_n that_o ever_o allow_a salvation_n without_o baptism_n when_o it_o can_v be_v have_v when_o it_o can_v not_o the_o profession_n of_o he_o that_o desive_v it_o be_v as_o clear_v as_o if_o his_o flesh_n be_v cleanse_v that_o comprise_v not_o the_o take_n up_o of_o christ_n cross_n by_o profess_v christianity_n in_o the_o nature_n and_o virtue_n of_o justify_v faith_n that_o oppose_v that_o faith_n which_o alone_o justifi_v to_o any_o other_o work_n than_o those_o of_o moses_n law_n but_o there_o be_v no_o such_o thing_n to_o be_v show_v this_o be_v every_o where_o to_o be_v show_v in_o all_o writing_n any_o way_n allow_v by_o the_o church_n that_o the_o justification_n of_o a_o christian_a depend_v upon_o the_o performance_n of_o that_o which_o he_o profess_v and_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o he_o attain_v by_o undertake_v to_o live_v as_o a_o christian_a upon_o the_o good_a work_n whereby_o he_o perform_v the_o same_o and_o the_o honour_n of_o christianity_n can_v stand_v otherwise_o there_o be_v no_o sin_n which_o it_o cleanse_v not_o the_o reason_n be_v because_o there_o be_v no_o righteousness_n to_o which_o it_o oblige_v not_o he_o who_o believe_v that_o our_o lord_n christ_n tender_v salvation_n upon_o condition_n of_o believe_v and_o live_v as_o a_o christian_a can_v expect_v that_o which_o he_o tender_v without_o return_v that_o which_o he_o require_v but_o he_o that_o be_v overtake_v in_o sin_n by_o this_o faith_n can_v do_v no_o more_o for_o the_o present_a then_o undertake_v so_o to_o believe_v and_o so_o to_o live_v for_o the_o future_a thereby_o he_o undertake_v all_o righteousness_n for_o the_o future_a and_o by_o undertake_v ●●_o be_v translate_v from_o the_o state_n of_o damnation_n for_o sin_n to_o the_o state_n of_o salvation_n by_o grace_n which_o if_o he_o attain_v without_o undertake_v if_o he_o retain_v without_o perform_v then_o do_v not_o god_n glory_n appea●_n by_o his_o gospel_n but_o there_o be_v no_o thing_n so_o particular_a to_o this_o purpose_n as_o those_o say_n whereby_o the_o father_n declare_v that_o a_o christian_n be_v justify_v by_o faith_n alone_o in_o case_n he_o die_v upon_o his_o baptism_n if_o he_o survive_v then_o that_o he_o be_v justify_v by_o the_o work_n whereby_o his_o profession_n be_v perform_v of_o which_o saying_n have_v produce_v a_o considerable_a number_n i_o be_o by_o they_o to_o measure_v the_o meaning_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o their_o writing_n the_o article_n of_o this_o church_n set_v forth_o justification_n by_o church_n the_o sense_n of_o this_o church_n faith_n alone_o for_o a_o most_o wholesome_a doctrine_n and_o full_a of_o comfort_n for_o the_o sense_n of_o it_o refer_v we_o to_o the_o homily_n upon_o that_o subject_n i_o will_v not_o say_v that_o my_o position_n be_v lay_v down_o in_o that_o homily_n for_o there_o be_v many_o passage_n of_o it_o which_o show_v they_o that_o pen_v it_o no_o way_n clear_a in_o that_o point_n yet_o there_o be_v divers_a sentence_n of_o the_o father_n allege_v in_o it_o which_o can_v be_v understand_v to_o other_o purpose_n and_o other_o passage_n well_o agree_v with_o it_o but_o in_o the_o church_n catechism_n and_o in_o the_o office_n of_o baptism_n it_o be_v so_o clear_o lay_v down_o as_o will_v serve_v for_o ever_o to_o silence_v any_o other_o sense_n and_o
qualify_a for_o everlasting_a life_n that_o be_v as_o they_o express_o include_v it_o not_o so_o they_o may_v be_v say_v to_o exclude_v it_o though_o on_o the_o other_o side_n as_o they_o express_o exclude_v it_o not_o so_o they_o may_v be_v say_v to_o include_v it_o but_o socinus_n have_v plain_o take_v up_o diverse_a article_n of_o the_o heresy_n of_o pelagius_n affirm_v that_o adam_n must_v have_v dye_v though_o he_o have_v not_o sin_v and_o that_o christ_n come_v not_o to_o cure_v any_o sin_n that_o by_o his_o fall_n be_v become_v original_a to_o his_o posterity_n or_o to_o procure_v any_o grace_n which_o original_a sin_n render_v necessary_a to_o make_v we_o good_a christian_n but_o only_o to_o assure_v the_o world_n by_o his_o doctrine_n and_o by_o his_o example_n that_o god_n will_v make_v good_a his_o message_n if_o we_o fail_v not_o on_o our_o side_n and_o have_v thus_o exclude_v the_o consideration_n of_o his_o merit_n either_o in_o declare_v the_o gospel_n or_o in_o perform_v it_o what_o necessity_n remain_v why_o he_o shall_v be_v god_n this_o be_v the_o pedigree_n of_o this_o heresy_n complicate_v of_o the_o heresy_n of_o pelagius_n and_o paulus_n s●mosatenus_n as_o this_o late_a of_o the_o heresy_n of_o ebion_n and_o artemas_n and_o of_o sabellius_n for_o as_o liberatus_n archdeacon_n of_o carthage_n have_v well_o observe_v in_o his_o abridgement_n of_o the_o trouble_n of_o nestorius_n and_o eutyches_n samosatenus_fw-la deny_v the_o godhead_n of_o christ_n with_o ebion_n and_o artemas_n as_o concern_v the_o holy_a ghost_n must_v of_o necessity_n say_v with_o sabellius_n as_o socinus_n do_v that_o he_o be_v the_o virtue_n and_o efficacy_n that_o be_v to_o say_v a_o mere_a notional_a attribute_n of_o the_o father_n godhead_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n socinus_n exclude_v satisfaction_n by_o christ_n it_o how_o the_o misunderstanding_n of_o satisfaction_n and_o imputation_n occasion_v it_o obedience_n have_v express_o exclude_v all_o imputation_n of_o it_o be_v the_o immediate_a consequence_n of_o satisfaction_n and_o the_o effect_n of_o it_o in_o order_n of_o reason_n but_o in_o nature_n and_o be_v the_o same_o thing_n with_o it_o now_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o body_n of_o his_o doctrine_n that_o he_o have_v conceive_v a_o deep_a dislike_n of_o the_o opinion_n which_o i_o count_v heresy_n that_o place_v justify_v faith_n in_o believe_v a_o man_n self_n to_o be_v predestinate_v to_o life_n from_o everlasting_a and_o therefore_o understand_v the_o imputation_n of_o christ_n righteousness_n as_o that_o opinion_n must_v needs_o understand_v it_o namely_o that_o man_n be_v reconcile_v to_o god_n by_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n their_o sin_n be_v pardon_v before_o they_o be_v do_v and_o they_o adopt_v to_o the_o glory_n they_o shall_v one_o day_n have_v without_o consideration_n of_o any_o condition_n qualify_a for_o it_o which_o vo_o man_n of_o common_a reason_n will_v take_v to_o be_v the_o sense_n of_o st._n bernard_n or_o other_o learned_a divine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o have_v allow_v imputation_n to_o righteousness_n and_o therefore_o it_o will_v be_v necessary_a to_o distinguish_v a_o twofold_a sense_n in_o the_o imputation_n of_o christ_n obedience_n and_o the_o satisfaction_n which_o it_o follow_v to_o wit_n according_a to_o the_o effect_n to_o which_o it_o be_v think_v that_o satisfaction_n be_v make_v and_o impute_v or_o put_v to_o account_v for_o in_o the_o opinion_n which_o i_o call_v heresy_n the_o merit_n of_o christ_n be_v immediate_o impute_v to_o they_o for_o who_o they_o be_v intend_v for_o righteousness_n and_o life_n everlasting_a but_o in_o the_o faith_n of_o god_n church_n christ_n suffering_n be_v immediate_o impute_v to_o mankind_n because_o in_o consideration_n of_o they_o god_n declare_v himself_o ready_a to_o be_v reconcile_v with_o all_o that_o turn_v good_a christian_n and_o according_o make_v good_a the_o promise_n of_o his_o gospel_n to_o they_o perform_v their_o christianity_n so_o that_o in_o the_o sense_n which_o socinus_n reject_v which_o be_v the_o sense_n of_o our_o fanatickes_n imputation_n as_o well_o as_o satisfaction_n be_v immediate_a and_o personal_a in_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n mediate_a and_o real_a or_o causal_n because_o it_o be_v immediate_o to_o no_o further_a effect_n then_o of_o procure_v the_o gospel_n to_o the_o effect_n of_o salvation_n by_o the_o mean_n of_o that_o christianity_n which_o it_o require_v have_v socinus_n consider_v the_o consequence_n of_o this_o distinction_n refute_v upon_o what_o ground_n be_v be_v to_o be_v refute_v he_o will_v never_o have_v put_v himself_o upon_o the_o task_n of_o confine_v all_o that_o be_v say_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n of_o redemption_n reconciliation_n and_o propitiation_n by_o christ_n and_o by_o his_o blood_n to_o the_o effect_n of_o assure_v we_o that_o god_n will_v stand_v to_o the_o gospel_n which_o he_o publish_v he_o will_v never_o have_v wrest_v the_o signification_n of_o all_o sacrifice_n and_o type_n figure_v our_o lord_n christ_n and_o his_o death_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n to_o intend_v no_o more_o than_o the_o induce_n of_o we_o to_o that_o christianity_n which_o he_o preach_v in_o confidence_n of_o that_o grace_n which_o he_o for_o his_o obedience_n be_v advance_v to_o bestow_v he_o will_v never_o have_v declare_v against_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o holy_a trinity_n out_o of_o a_o presumption_n that_o the_o salvation_n of_o christian_n be_v provide_v for_o setting_z aside_o the_o godhead_n of_o our_o lord_n christ_n and_o the_o satisfaction_n at_o which_o his_o obedience_n be_v valuable_a in_o consideration_n of_o it_o in_o fine_a he_o will_v not_o have_v transgress_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n have_v he_o understand_v it_o but_o have_v before_o condemn_v the_o pope_n for_o antichrist_n and_o the_o papist_n for_o idolater_n and_o derive_v this_o apostasy_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n from_o the_o very_a death_n of_o the_o apostle_n no_o marvel_n that_o he_o will_v not_o be_v confine_v to_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n that_o he_o can_v not_o see_v the_o ground_n of_o it_o no_o marvel_n that_o he_o oversee_v the_o procession_n of_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n by_o be_v baptize_v in_o the_o condition_n of_o our_o salvation_n know_v that_o he_o transgress_v the_o rule_n of_o that_o faith_n no_o marvel_n that_o they_o who_o see_v he_o in_o the_o wrong_n in_o refute_v he_o and_o his_o follower_n be_v sometime_o worsted_n in_o a_o true_a cause_n because_o they_o consider_v not_o that_o the_o punishment_n of_o christ_n for_o our_o sin_n may_v so_o be_v understand_v as_o to_o make_v the_o reward_n of_o christianity_n due_a before_o and_o therefore_o without_o the_o perform_n of_o it_o whereas_o understand_v his_o suffering_n to_o concern_v immediate_o no_o particular_a man_n person_n but_o the_o common_a cause_n of_o mankind_n the_o immediate_a effect_n thereof_o be_v the_o procure_n of_o a_o new_a law_n for_o god_n to_o proceed_v with_o we_o by_o which_o law_n be_v set_v on_o foot_n upon_o the_o fall_n of_o adam_n be_v first_o full_o reveal_v by_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n the_o original_a law_n which_o man_n in_o his_o original_a uprightness_n be_v subject_a to_o remain_v still_o the_o rule_n of_o righteousness_n according_a to_o those_o term_n which_o the_o gospel_n declare_v though_o for_o the_o effect_n of_o take_v vengeance_n on_o we_o abrogate_a or_o dispense_v with_o in_o consideration_n of_o christ_n obedience_n now_o those_o help_n of_o grace_n which_o the_o gospel_n tender_v for_o obedience_n the_o help_n of_o grace_n grant_v in_o consideration_n of_o christ_n obedience_n the_o undertake_n and_o perform_v of_o that_o christianity_n which_o it_o require_v be_v also_o grant_v in_o consideration_n of_o christ_n merit_n and_o suffering_n put_v to_o our_o account_n that_o be_v the_o help_n of_o prevent_a grace_n or_o the_o actual_a motion_n of_o god_n spirit_n without_o which_o the_o gospel_n be_v a_o mere_a abuse_n suppose_v original_a sin_n upon_o the_o common_a account_n of_o mankind_n the_o help_n of_o follow_a grace_n or_o the_o habitual_a endowment_n of_o god_n spirit_n upon_o the_o personal_a account_n of_o he_o that_o be_v save_v by_o baptism_n but_o both_o kind_n presuppose_v that_o the_o come_n of_o the_o second_o adam_n be_v to_o repair_v the_o breach_n which_o the_o first_o adam_n have_v make_v both_o condemn_v the_o heresy_n of_o pelagius_n which_o socinus_n in_o some_o article_n of_o it_o revive_v and_o indeed_o to_o deny_v bodily_a death_n to_o be_v the_o effect_n of_o adam_n sin_n what_o be_v it_o else_o but_o to_o deny_v the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o flesh_n to_o be_v the_o effect_n of_o christ_n righteousness_n for_o though_o it_o be_v the_o power_n of_o his_o godhead_n that_o shall_v raise_v they_o again_o who_o shall_v rise_v to_o shame_n yet_o if_o it_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o holiness_n which_o
there_o deliver_v introduce_v a_o new_a law_n which_o oblige_v not_o under_o the_o old_a testament_n for_o i_o have_v show_v that_o under_o it_o the_o father_n be_v save_v as_o christian_n that_o be_v by_o worship_v god_n in_o spirit_n and_o truth_n but_o that_o there_o be_v a_o twofold_a sense_n in_o moses_n law_n and_o that_o by_o keep_v it_o according_a to_o the_o letter_n they_o hold_v the_o land_n of_o promise_n according_a to_o the_o spirit_n though_o in_o a_o less_o measure_n than_o the_o gospel_n require_v they_o attain_v the_o world_n to_o come_v the_o satisfaction_n and_o merit_n of_o good_a work_n do_v by_o christian_n work_n of_o the_o satisfaction_n and_o merit_n of_o christian_a work_n may_v be_v understand_v to_o be_v ground_v either_o upon_o their_o intrinsic_a value_n or_o upon_o that_o mark_n which_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n stamp_v they_o with_o in_o consideration_n of_o christ_n merit_n and_o suffering_n but_o that_o intrinsic_a value_n at_o which_o they_o be_v value_v by_o those_o who_o make_v they_o worth_a life_n everlasting_a upon_o term_n of_o commutative_a justice_n rise_v upon_o the_o account_n of_o god_n spirit_n by_o the_o grace_n whereof_o they_o be_v do_v and_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n spirit_n be_v not_o grant_v but_o in_o consideration_n of_o our_o lord_n christ_n and_o his_o obedience_n and_o therefore_o this_o intrinsic_a value_n be_v mere_o imaginary_a even_o in_o the_o opinion_n of_o they_o that_o advance_v it_o unless_o they_o will_v needs_o contradict_v themselves_o for_o the_o value_n of_o our_o lord_n obedience_n be_v necessary_o extrinsic_a to_o we_o to_o who_o account_n it_o redound_v only_o by_o imputation_n of_o grace_n and_o therefore_o there_o be_v no_o intrinsic_a value_n of_o christian_a work_n suppose_v the_o gospel_n to_o be_v that_o which_o i_o have_v say_v for_o be_v perform_v by_o virtue_n of_o god_n grace_n they_o can_v be_v acceptable_a to_o the_o effect_n of_o salvation_n but_o by_o the_o same_o grace_n but_o the_o merit_n or_o the_o satisfaction_n which_o be_v ascribe_v unto_o they_o be_v ground_v upon_o that_o grace_n bring_v salvation_n to_o all_o which_o have_v appear_v by_o the_o gospel_n it_o be_v not_o possible_a to_o imagine_v what_o it_o can_v derogate_v from_o the_o merit_n and_o satisfaction_n of_o our_o lord_n christ_n it_o be_v true_a man_n may_v forget_v their_o own_o ground_n as_o i_o have_v say_v that_o they_o do_v who_o will_v have_v the_o work_n of_o christian_n to_o merit_v heaven_n upon_o term_n of_o commutative_a justice_n and_o forget_v themselves_o they_o may_v contradict_v themselves_o ascribe_v that_o for_o debt_n to_o they_o that_o do_v they_o which_o be_v not_o due_a but_o upon_o the_o account_n of_o christ_n obedience_n but_o still_o the_o worse_a divine_n the_o better_a christian_n for_o the_o truth_n which_o they_o profess_v if_o they_o profess_v it_o not_o in_o vain_a shall_v be_v a_o antidote_n against_o that_o pride_n destructive_a to_o the_o humility_n of_o a_o christian_a which_o the_o opinion_n of_o a_o man_n own_o merit_n produce_v whereas_o they_o who_o exclude_v all_o consideration_n of_o our_o work_n from_o the_o great_a trial_n of_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n do_v thereby_o exclude_v christianity_n out_o of_o the_o heart_n as_o they_o do_v the_o creed_n out_o of_o the_o church_n whereas_o they_o who_o suppose_v gross_a and_o heinous_a sin_n to_o be_v pardon_v before_o they_o see_v the_o fruit_n of_o repentance_n in_o work_n of_o mortification_n by_o extraordinary_a exercise_n of_o devotion_n with_o fast_v and_o alm_n do_v contribute_v as_o much_o as_o their_o allowance_n signify_v to_o the_o murder_n of_o that_o soul_n which_o may_v have_v be_v cure_v have_v not_o their_o authority_n make_v man_n believe_v that_o there_o need_v no_o such_o cure_n there_o be_v a_o opinion_n creep_v into_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n on_o the_o other_o side_n that_o imperfect_a sorrow_n for_o that_o sin_n which_o by_o confession_n be_v submit_v to_o the_o key_n of_o the_o church_n serve_v to_o cure_v such_o sin_n how_o great_a soever_o and_o that_o penance_n be_v enjoin_v to_o redeem_v the_o debt_n of_o temporal_a punishment_n to_o be_v pay_v in_o purgatory_n if_o not_o here_o as_o remain_v due_a when_o the_o guilt_n be_v do_v away_o whereas_o the_o work_n of_o mortification_n be_v but_o the_o exercise_n and_o the_o performance_n of_o that_o contrition_n which_o the_o gospel_n require_v to_o qualify_v a_o man_n for_o pardon_n of_o his_o sin_n and_o therefore_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n can_v supply_v the_o want_n of_o that_o condition_n which_o the_o gospel_n require_v in_o he_o that_o seek_v forgiveness_n but_o only_o procure_v it_o by_o exclude_v he_o from_o the_o communion_n that_o shall_v refuse_v the_o cure_n which_o the_o church_n prescribe_v now_o this_o be_v a_o opinion_n which_o that_o church_n allow_v but_o enjoin_v not_o and_o therefore_o whether_o there_o be_v more_o danger_n there_o by_o this_o opinion_n or_o by_o the_o other_o extreme_a where_o all_o work_n of_o mortification_n be_v cry_v down_o for_o superstitious_a i_o leave_v to_o the_o conscience_n of_o discreet_a christian_n the_o catholic_a church_n have_v use_v the_o term_n of_o satisfaction_n and_o merit_n in_o a_o true_a sense_n and_o to_o a_o good_a purpose_n and_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o show_v that_o the_o same_o sense_n be_v allow_v though_o not_o enjoin_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n even_o since_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n be_v this_o the_o place_n i_o have_v say_v that_o the_o obedience_n of_o the_o second_o adam_n be_v not_o immediate_o posterity_n original_a sin_n be_v not_o adam_n sin_n impute_v to_o his_o posterity_n impute_v to_o any_o particular_a man_n account_n but_o first_o to_o the_o common_a account_n of_o mankind_n and_o to_o the_o account_n of_o particular_a person_n as_o they_o be_v qualify_v for_o it_o by_o be_v good_a christian_n and_o now_o i_o must_v say_v according_o that_o the_o disobedience_n of_o the_o first_o adam_n be_v not_o impute_v immediate_o to_o the_o damnation_n of_o any_o particular_a but_o to_o the_o bondage_n of_o all_o ●is_n posterity_n for_o no_o man_n shall_v be_v condemn_v at_o the_o last_o day_n but_o for_o the_o work_n which_o he_o shall_v be_v find_v to_o have_v do_v in_o the_o body_n and_o for_o what_o he_o shall_v then_o be_v condemn_v for_o the_o same_o god_n decree_v that_o he_o shall_v be_v condemn_v from_o everlasting_a so_o be_v become_v slave_n to_o sin_n we_o be_v ransom_v by_o christ_n but_o as_o this_o ransom_n intitle_v we_o not_o to_o life_n till_o we_o embrace_v the_o term_n of_o it_o neither_o do_v this_o bondage_n damn_v we_o till_o we_o beome_v party_n to_o it_o by_o our_o sin_n if_o this_o be_v true_a then_o do_v not_o original_a sin_n consist_v in_o the_o imputation_n of_o adam_n sin_n to_o his_o posterity_n as_o catharinus_n hold_v at_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n with_o great_a applause_n and_o indeed_o i_o need_v not_o dispute_v that_o god_n can_v in_o justice_n punish_v one_o man_n for_o another_o man_n sin_n because_o you_o see_v the_o posterity_n of_o the_o first_o adam_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n be_v punish_v for_o his_o sin_n no_o otherwise_o than_o it_o be_v reward_v for_o the_o second_o adam_n and_o for_o his_o righteousness_n the_o interest_n of_o our_o common_a christianity_n be_v safe_a so_o long_o as_o the_o necessity_n of_o christ_n come_n and_o the_o reason_n of_o it_o for_o the_o cure_n of_o the_o breach_n which_o adam_n make_v remain_v evident_a and_o unmoveable_a nor_o be_v there_o any_o difficulty_n in_o resolve_v the_o nature_n of_o original_a consist_v wherein_o original_a sin_n consist_v sin_n that_o shall_v drive_v we_o to_o this_o novelty_n all_o sin_n be_v a_o act_n or_o a_o habit_n that_o fail_v of_o that_o measure_n which_o god_n law_n require_v original_a sin_n have_v only_o this_o peculiar_a that_o give_v the_o like_a inclination_n as_o other_o habit_n do_v it_o be_v not_o contract_v by_o custom_n but_o by_o birth_n call_v this_o inclination_n to_o that_o which_o god_n law_n forbid_v concupiscence_n and_o you_o have_v express_v the_o whole_a nature_n of_o original_a sin_n for_o call_v it_o concupiscence_n you_o make_v it_o to_o be_v the_o want_n of_o original_a righteousness_n but_o you_o express_v over_o and_o above_o what_o it_o be_v that_o succee_v in_o mankind_n bear_v in_o original_a sin_n instead_o of_o original_a righteousness_n to_o wit_n that_o disorder_n in_o our_o inclination_n which_o concupiscence_n signify_v the_o question_n only_o remain_v whether_o original_a uprightness_n signify_v what_o original_a righteousness_n signify_v shall_v signify_v only_a innocence_n or_o supernatural_a grace_n over_o and_o above_o for_o it_o may_v be_v suppose_v that_o man_n be_v create_v at_o the_o first_o only_o to_o the_o happiness_n of_o this_o life_n upon_o condition_n
of_o live_v according_a to_o the_o innocence_n in_o which_o he_o be_v create_v and_o there_o be_v that_o have_v maintain_v this_o though_o not_o deny_v that_o god_n intend_v to_o reward_v this_o exercise_n of_o his_o innocence_n with_o a_o call_n to_o a_o high_a estate_n the_o father_n indeed_o be_v of_o another_o mind_n move_v perhaps_o by_o the_o mystery_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o church_n which_o he_o discover_v in_o his_o marriage_n with_o his_o own_o flesh_n gen._n i._n 24._o eph._n v._o 31._o for_o this_o seem_v to_o make_v adam_n a_o prophet_n endow_v with_o god_n spirit_n but_o he_o that_o shall_v not_o think_v it_o necessary_a that_o adam_n shall_v understand_v the_o mystical_a sense_n of_o his_o own_o word_n will_v not_o be_v tie_v to_o that_o consequence_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n the_o common_a christianity_n and_o the_o ground_n of_o salvation_n seem_v to_o remain_v unmoveable_a grant_v that_o by_o advance_v the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n which_o be_v set_v on_o foot_n in_o paradise_n so_o soon_o as_o god_n promise_v the_o seed_n of_o the_o woman_n to_o dissolve_v the_o work_n of_o the_o serpent_n god_n call_v mankind_n to_o a_o estate_n of_o supernatural_a grace_n and_o though_o it_o may_v be_v dispute_v whether_o it_o can_v stand_v with_o the_o holiness_n of_o god_n and_o the_o purity_n of_o his_o work_n to_o have_v make_v man_n in_o a_o estate_n of_o mere_a nature_n that_o be_v subject_n to_o concupiscence_n without_o supernatural_a grace_n to_o restrain_v the_o effect_n of_o it_o yet_o can_v it_o not_o stand_v with_o his_o justice_n create_v man_n to_o supernatural_a happiness_n and_o therefore_o liable_a to_o damnation_n transgress_v the_o supernatural_a righteousness_n which_o it_o must_v require_v to_o create_v he_o without_o supernatural_a grace_n necessary_a to_o the_o perform_n of_o the_o say_a righteousness_n to_o fortify_v that_o which_o have_v be_v say_v i_o be_o not_o to_o omit_v that_o nature_n what_o good_a the_o unregenerate_a be_v able_a to_o do_v by_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n which_o st._n paul_n seem_v express_o to_o teach_v rom._n ii_o 12-16_a that_o they_o who_o be_v not_o under_o god_n positive_a law_n shall_v be_v judge_v at_o the_o last_o day_n by_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n which_o if_o it_o be_v so_o then_o shall_v they_o not_o be_v condemn_v for_o original_a sin_n it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o christianity_n shall_v give_v account_n why_o god_n think_v good_a to_o suffer_v adam_n to_o be_v seduce_v by_o the_o apostate_n angel_n and_o mankind_n to_o be_v bear_v in_o bondage_n to_o sin_n why_o he_o suffer_v the_o great_a part_n of_o it_o to_o be_v overcome_v with_o idolatry_n after_o he_o have_v set_v the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n on_o foot_n it_o be_v enough_o that_o he_o find_v it_o for_o his_o glory_n to_o give_v sin_n this_o entrance_n into_o the_o world_n which_o he_o mean_v to_o encounter_v with_o that_o grace_n which_o his_o gospel_n reveal_v leave_v that_o which_o it_o reveal_v not_o to_o be_v unfold_v at_o the_o day_n of_o the_o judgement_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n if_o they_o who_o know_v not_o god_n law_n be_v judge_v by_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n they_o be_v not_o judge_v by_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n though_o give_v all_o mankind_n in_o paradise_n because_o by_o corruption_n of_o sin_n they_o be_v grow_v stranger_n to_o it_o much_o less_o therefore_o by_o the_o original_a righteousness_n of_o paradise_n supply_v by_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n now_o the_o corrupt_a inclination_n of_o concupiscence_n extinguish_v not_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n which_o by_o discover_v the_o difference_n between_o that_o which_o be_v good_a because_o it_o be_v honest_a and_o that_o which_o be_v only_o pleasant_a or_o profitable_a condemn_v the_o neglect_n of_o that_o for_o either_o of_o these_o man_n be_v sensible_a of_o his_o own_o worth_n and_o the_o wrong_n that_o he_o do_v it_o when_o he_o prefer_v profit_n or_o pleasure_n before_o the_o obligation_n which_o it_o infer_v and_o therefore_o there_o can_v no_o question_n remain_v that_o he_o be_v able_a notwithstanding_o original_a sin_n to_o do_v that_o which_o be_v good_a for_o a_o right_a reason_n and_o a_o good_a intent_n for_o the_o reason_n of_o profit_n or_o pleasure_n do_v not_o always_o drown_v and_o swallow_v up_o the_o reason_n of_o that_o which_o be_v just_a and_o honourable_a therefore_o he_o who_o make_v not_o the_o world_n to_o come_v his_o end_n may_v do_v that_o which_o be_v true_o good_a for_o honesty_n sake_n and_o the_o satisfaction_n of_o love_v it_o as_o it_o deserve_v but_o because_o concupiscence_n which_o the_o world_n be_v infect_v with_o procure_v daily_a occasion_n of_o opposition_n between_o right_n and_o interest_n and_o those_o such_o as_o call_v in_o question_n the_o worldly_a estate_n of_o he_o that_o shall_v resolve_v to_o prefer_v the_o right_n in_o all_o thing_n therefore_o be_v not_o the_o natural_a man_n able_a to_o resolve_v upon_o god_n for_o the_o end_n of_o all_o his_o do_n his_o corrupt_a inclination_n betray_v the_o judgement_n whereby_o he_o allow_v that_o which_o be_v best_a to_o the_o interest_n of_o his_o profit_n or_o pleasure_n now_o whether_o those_o action_n which_o be_v do_v upon_o good_a ground_n and_o for_o a_o good_a purpose_n but_o by_o a_o man_n that_o make_v not_o god_n the_o end_n of_o all_o his_o do_n be_v to_o be_v count_v sin_n or_o not_o i_o will_v not_o dispute_v thus_o much_o appear_v that_o they_o who_o be_v to_o be_v judge_v by_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n do_v not_o always_o transgress_v the_o law_n of_o nature_n for_o how_o shall_v they_o be_v judge_v by_o that_o law_n which_o they_o can_v choose_v but_o transgress_v chap._n xii_o upon_o what_o term_n that_o which_o be_v possible_a may_v become_v futurg_n the_o difference_n between_o necessity_n antecedent_n and_o consequent_a the_o difference_n between_o freedom_n from_o necessity_n and_o from_o bondage_n freedom_n from_o necessity_n always_o require_v indetermination_n not_o always_o indifference_n the_o object_n determine_v the_o will_n save_v the_o freedom_n of_o it_o whence_o the_o certainty_n of_o future_a contingency_n arise_v how_o this_o appear_v in_o the_o scripture_n god_n no_o cause_n of_o sin_n according_a to_o the_o scripture_n concern_v the_o middle_a knowledge_n of_o god_n this_o be_v the_o estate_n in_o which_o the_o gospel_n overtake_v mankind_n future_a upon_o what_o term_n that_o which_o be_v possible_a may_v become_v future_a the_o question_n concern_v the_o concurrence_n of_o man_n free_a will_n to_o the_o work_n of_o god_n free_a grace_n be_v that_o which_o remain_v and_o the_o resolve_v of_o it_o lie_v in_o resolve_v by_o what_o mean_n and_o upon_o what_o account_n that_o which_o be_v of_o itself_o only_o possible_a become_v future_a how_o it_o become_v certain_a that_o such_o a_o thing_n shall_v be_v which_o of_o itself_o only_o may_v be_v for_o that_o which_o be_v possible_a and_o no_o more_o be_v of_o itself_o a_o mere_a nothing_o that_o which_o only_o may_v be_v be_v not_o only_o it_o signify_v withal_o that_o there_o be_v something_o that_o be_v able_a to_o reduce_v it_o to_o effect_n or_o be_v but_o that_o which_o be_v future_a signify_v here_o not_o only_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d not_o only_o that_o which_o as_o yet_o be_v not_o but_o that_o which_o hereafter_o shall_v be_v and_o that_o import_v a_o certain_a be_v for_o that_o time_n see_v then_o that_o nothing_o can_v reduce_v itself_o to_o be_v the_o question_n be_v what_o it_o be_v that_o render_v it_o certain_a to_o be_v for_o the_o time_n when_o it_o shall_v be_v for_o all_o that_o god_n can_v do_v be_v absolute_o possible_a and_o god_n can_v do_v whatsoever_o can_v be_v do_v god_n can_v deny_v himself_o and_o that_o he_o shall_v do_v if_o contradictory_n shall_v be_v true_a or_o thing_n that_o destroy_v one_o another_o subsist_v both_o at_o once_o according_o whatsoever_o god_n see_v be_v certain_a and_o god_n see_v whatsoever_o shall_v be_v so_o whatsoever_o shall_v be_v be_v certain_a though_o we_o know_v not_o what_o it_o be_v now_o i_o have_v say_v that_o it_o become_v not_o certain_a by_o any_o decree_n or_o motion_n of_o god_n whereby_o he_o determine_v the_o will_n of_o man_n and_o move_v it_o to_o do_v whatsoever_o it_o do_v before_o it_o move_v or_o determine_v itself_o at_o least_o in_o order_n of_o nature_n priority_n in_o order_n of_o nature_n signify_v this_o that_o the_o motion_n of_o free_a will_n do_v necessary_o depend_v and_o shall_v necessary_o follow_v upon_o the_o precedent_a determination_n and_o motion_n of_o god_n but_o thing_n be_v say_v to_o be_v necessary_a two_o way_n some_o be_v consequent_a the_o difference_n between_o necessity_n antecedent_n and_o consequent_a absolute_o necessary_a the_o necessity_n whereof_o lie_v
and_o therefore_o there_o be_v no_o ground_n for_o private_a mass_n by_o grant_v the_o eucharist_n to_o be_v in_o this_o nature_n a_o sacrifice_n but_o can_v any_o man_n say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o principal_a office_n of_o service_n the_o eucharist_n not_o the_o sermon_n the_o chief_a office_n of_o god_n service_n christian_a assembly_n that_o it_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v frequent_v upon_o all_o the_o chief_a occasion_n for_o the_o assembly_n of_o god_n church_n that_o the_o ordinary_a work_n for_o which_o we_o meet_v all_o lord_n day_n and_o other_o day_n if_o on_o other_o day_n we_o ought_v ordinary_o and_o solemn_o to_o meet_v be_v a_o sermon_n with_o a_o arbitrary_a prayer_n before_o or_o after_o it_o that_o they_o who_o take_v the_o pain_n to_o minister_v the_o same_o be_v to_o be_v excuse_v of_o celebrate_v the_o eucharist_n or_o minister_a the_o prayer_n of_o the_o church_n which_o it_o be_v to_o be_v celebrate_v with_o unless_o it_o be_v three_o or_o four_o time_n a_o year_n and_o much_o more_o of_o read_v the_o scripture_n or_o praise_v god_n upon_o david_n psalter_n and_o the_o hymn_n of_o the_o church_n i_o confess_v calvin_n reformation_n be_v much_o after_o that_o form_n and_o all_o the_o ar●_n of_o the_o bless_a reformation_n here_o pretend_v have_v be_v to_o impose_v it_o for_o a_o law_n upon_o this_o kingdom_n without_o once_o plead_v that_o it_o be_v for_o the_o best_a but_o so_o gross_o prejudicial_a to_o the_o service_n of_o god_n and_o the_o common_a christianity_n that_o it_o be_v injurious_a to_o fear_v that_o a_o christian_a kingdom_n can_v suffer_v such_o a_o imposture_n derogate_a far_o more_o from_o the_o perpetual_a custom_n of_o god_n whole_a church_n than_o it_o can_v from_o the_o present_a law_n of_o this_o kingdom_n that_o therefore_o i_o may_v make_v way_n to_o the_o determine_n of_o that_o which_o remain_v most_o questionable_a among_o we_o what_o be_v the_o best_a form_n of_o service_n which_o the_o church_n of_o this_o kingdom_n can_v worship_n god_n with_o i_o must_v in_o the_o first_o place_n lay_v down_o that_o rule_n by_o which_o all_o reformation_n of_o law_n ecclesiastical_a be_v to_o be_v direct_v together_o with_o the_o ground_n of_o it_o chap._n xv._o the_o ground_n that_o determine_v the_o form_n of_o our_o service_n the_o office_n of_o which_o the_o service_n be_v to_o consist_v of_o the_o use_n of_o the_o psalm_n of_o read_v the_o scripture_n common_o call_v apocrypha_fw-la what_o preach_v it_o be_v that_o the_o scripture_n commend_v there_o may_v be_v preach_v without_o sermon_n and_o sermon_n without_o preach_v the_o difference_n between_o the_o second_o service_n in_o the_o ancient_a church_n and_o our_o communion_n service_n the_o general_a preface_n and_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o church_n at_o the_o eucharist_n the_o prayer_n of_o oblation_n institute_v by_o s._n paul_n and_o the_o matter_n of_o it_o the_o lord_n prayer_n at_o the_o eucharist_n the_o place_n for_o the_o common_a prayer_n that_o ground_n upon_o which_o the_o form_n of_o our_o service_n be_v to_o be_v service_n the_o ground_n that_o determine_v the_o form_n of_o ou●_n service_n determine_v be_v to_o determine_v all_o that_o remain_v to_o be_v determine_v in_o matter_n of_o religion_n by_o law_n of_o this_o kingdom_n the_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o to_o be_v have_v but_o out_o of_o the_o record_n of_o antiquity_n especial_o of_o god_n ancient_a people_n f●●st_n and_o then_o of_o the_o christian_a church_n the_o obligation_n of_o that_o sense_n upon_o the_o church_n at_o this_o time_n be_v not_o to_o be_v measure_v against_o the_o primitive_a practice_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n the_o reformation_n of_o the_o church_n be_v nothing_o but_o the_o restore_n of_o that_o which_o may_v appear_v to_o have_v be_v in_o force_n especial_o since_o christianity_n have_v be_v protect_v by_o the_o law_n of_o the_o empire_n because_o the_o great_a difference_n between_o the_o primitive_a time_n of_o christianity_n and_o this_o be_v the_o difference_n between_o the_o state_n of_o persecution_n and_o of_o protection_n by_o the_o law_n of_o this_o kingdom_n it_o be_v therefore_o necessary_a that_o both_o side_n profess_v the_o reformation_n shall_v agree_v upon_o the_o true_a ground_n of_o reformation_n and_o so_o upon_o the_o rule_n which_o that_o ground_n will_v maintain_v and_o evidence_n that_o be_v to_o submit_v all_o that_o be_v in_o question_n to_o the_o visible_a practice_n of_o the_o primitive_a time_n before_o those_o abuse_n be_v bring_v in_o which_o the_o reformation_n pretend_v to_o restore_v for_o if_o god_n have_v found_v a_o visible_a church_n which_o all_o this_o suppose_n then_o can_v the_o pope_n be_v antichrist_n nor_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n idolater_n for_o any_o thing_n which_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n justifi_v and_o see_v the_o church_n be_v visible_a by_o the_o law_n of_o it_o there_o can_v no_o church_n be_v visible_o one_o with_o that_o which_o be_v from_o the_o beginning_n but_o by_o rule_v itself_o by_o the_o same_o law_n so_o far_o as_o the_o state_n of_o the_o body_n for_o which_o they_o be_v make_v be_v the_o same_o that_o which_o shall_v be_v say_v concern_v the_o form_n of_o our_o service_n be_v a_o instance_n hereof_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o have_v be_v allege_v shall_v appear_v to_o agree_v with_o the_o primitive_a order_n of_o god_n church_n the_o revive_n of_o the_o order_n be_v the_o point_n of_o reformation_n in_o this_o particular_a allow_v for_o avoid_v just_a offence_n in_o alter_v the_o law_n of_o the_o kingdom_n without_o necessary_a cause_n as_o the_o wisdom_n of_o superior_n shall_v find_v requisite_a i_o must_v now_o suppose_v that_o the_o office_n of_o god_n service_n for_o consist_v the_o office_n of_o which_o the_o service_n be_v to_o consist_v which_o the_o church_n of_o god_n assemble_v ordinary_o and_o solemn_o be_v the_o praise_n of_o god_n the_o instruction_n of_o the_o people_n in_o the_o duty_n of_o their_o christianity_n whether_o by_o read_v the_o scripture_n or_o by_o handle_v the_o same_o and_o last_o the_o common_a prayer_n of_o the_o church_n especial_o those_o which_o the_o eucharist_n be_v to_o be_v celebrate_v with_o and_o this_o order_n which_o i_o put_v they_o in_o here_o be_v that_o which_o the_o church_n from_o the_o beginning_n have_v always_o observe_v the_o psalter_n of_o david_n in_o the_o first_o place_n have_v be_v so_o general_o psalm_n o●_n the_o use_n of_o the_o psalm_n frequent_v by_o the_o whole_a church_n for_o the_o instrument_n to_o make_v the_o praise_n of_o god_n sound_v forth_o that_o it_o ought_v not_o now_o to_o be_v question_v as_o question_v it_o be_v visible_o enough_o by_o any_o that_o will_v pretend_v to_o be_v of_o god_n church_n the_o order_n of_o read_v the_o psalm_n which_o the_o law_n of_o this_o kingdom_n require_v be_v admit_v because_o they_o be_v part_n of_o the_o scripture_n but_o all_o endeavour_n use_v that_o no_o devotion_n of_o the_o people_n be_v exercise_v by_o it_o the_o psalm_n in_o rhyme_n must_v engross_v that_o we_o have_v see_v a_o civil_a war_n in_o the_o time_n whereof_o these_o psalm_n in_o rhyme_n be_v crowd_v into_o the_o church_n by_o mere_a sufferance_n and_o so_o use_v without_o order_n of_o law_n have_v be_v employ_v on_o both_o side_n to_o brand_v the_o adverse_a party_n with_o the_o mark_n which_o the_o psalm_n set_v upon_o the_o enemy_n of_o david_n and_o of_o god_n people_n that_o be_v of_o christ_n and_o of_o christian_n more_o free_o by_o they_o who_o sing_v they_o at_o the_o head_n of_o their_o army_n to_o that_o purpose_n i_o hope_v those_o way_n do_v not_o please_v at_o present_a and_o therefore_o say_v free_o that_o the_o disorder_n ought_v not_o to_o continue_v some_o of_o our_o fanatic_n i_o know_v have_v tear_v they_o out_o of_o their_o bibles_n they_o think_v themselves_o not_o concern_v in_o they_o though_o david_n be_v the_o jew_n though_o they_o allow_v many_o of_o they_o to_o belong_v to_o the_o messiah_n will_v not_o have_v they_o belong_v to_o our_o lord_n christ_n but_o the_o church_n use_v they_o suppose_v they_o all_o fulfil_v in_o christ_n and_o christian_n whether_o particular_a soul_n or_o the_o body_n of_o his_o church_n upon_o this_o account_n they_o be_v the_o exercise_n of_o christian_a devotion_n but_o not_o the_o psalm_n in_o rhyme_n the_o music_n of_o they_o have_v prove_v too_o hard_o for_o the_o people_n to_o learn_v in_o a_o hundred_o year_n and_o yet_o no_o way_n more_o commendable_a than_o the_o rhime_n themselves_o be_v and_o repeat_v a_o little_a in_o much_o time_n the_o tune_n use_v in_o cathedral_n and_o collegiate_n church_n be_v easy_a to_o learn_v and_o serve_v that_o order_n which_o law_n settle_v for_o devotion_n not_o for_o read_v
celebration_n of_o the_o eucharist_n be_v so_o general_a and_o so_o ancient_a that_o it_o can_v be_v think_v to_o have_v come_v in_o upon_o imposture_n but_o that_o the_o same_o aspersion_n will_v seem_v to_o take_v hold_n of_o the_o common_a christianity_n but_o to_o what_o effect_n this_o intercession_n be_v make_v that_o be_v indeed_o purgatory_n the_o ancient_a church_n never_o pray_v to_o remove_v they_o out_o of_o purgatory_n the_o due_a point_n of_o difference_n for_o they_o who_o think_v that_o the_o ancient_a church_n pray_v and_o do_v themselves_o pray_v for_o the_o remove_n of_o they_o from_o a_o place_n of_o purgatory_n pain_n into_o perfect_a happiness_n by_o the_o clear_a sight_n of_o god_n offend_v against_o the_o ancient_a church_n as_o well_o as_o against_o the_o scripture_n both_o way_n for_o justine_n martyr_n make_v it_o a_o part_n of_o the_o gnostic_n heresy_n that_o the_o soul_n without_o the_o body_n be_v in_o perfect_a happiness_n they_o indeed_o hold_v it_o because_o they_o deny_v the_o resurrection_n but_o the_o church_n therefore_o believe_v the_o resurrection_n believe_v no_o perfect_a happiness_n of_o the_o soul_n before_o it_o and_o the_o great_a consent_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n in_o this_o point_n be_v acknowledge_v by_o divers_a learned_a writer_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n neither_o be_v the_o consent_n of_o it_o less_o evident_a in_o this_o that_o there_o be_v no_o translate_n of_o soul_n into_o a_o new_a estate_n before_o the_o great_a trial_n of_o the_o general_a judgement_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n then_o what_o hinder_v they_o to_o receive_v comfort_n eucharist_n to_o what_o purpose_n they_o be_v remember_v at_o the_o eucharist_n and_o refreshment_n rest_n and_o peace_n and_o light_n by_o the_o visitation_n of_o god_n by_o the_o consolation_n of_o his_o spirit_n by_o his_o good_a angel_n to_o sustain_v they_o in_o the_o expectation_n of_o their_o trial_n and_o the_o anxiety_n they_o be_v to_o pass_v through_o during_o the_o time_n of_o it_o and_o though_o there_o be_v hope_n for_o those_o that_o be_v most_o solicitous_a to_o live_v and_o die_v good_a christian_n that_o they_o be_v in_o no_o such_o suspense_n but_o within_o the_o bound_n of_o the_o heavenly_a jerusalem_n yet_o because_o their_o condition_n be_v uncertain_a and_o where_o there_o be_v hope_n of_o the_o better_a there_o be_v fear_n of_o the_o worse_o therefore_o the_o church_n have_v always_o assist_v they_o with_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o live_n both_o for_o their_o speedy_a trial_n which_o all_o bless_a soul_n desire_v and_o for_o their_o easy_a absolution_n and_o discharge_v with_o glory_n before_o god_n together_o with_o the_o accomplishment_n of_o their_o happiness_n in_o the_o receive_n of_o their_o body_n now_o all_o member_n of_o the_o church_n triumphant_a in_o heaven_n church_n the_o saint_n depart_v pray_v for_o the_o militant_a church_n according_a to_o the_o degree_n of_o their_o favour_n with_o god_n abound_v also_o with_o love_n to_o his_o church_n militant_a on_o earth_n and_o though_o they_o know_v not_o the_o necessity_n of_o particular_a person_n without_o particular_a revelation_n from_o god_n yet_o they_o know_v there_o be_v such_o necessity_n so_o long_o as_o the_o church_n be_v militant_a on_o earth_n therefore_o it_o be_v certain_a both_o that_o they_o offer_v continual_a prayer_n to_o god_n for_o those_o necessity_n and_o that_o their_o prayer_n must_v needs_o be_v of_o great_a force_n and_o effect_n with_o god_n for_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o church_n militant_a in_o this_o warfare_n which_o if_o it_o be_v true_a the_o communion_n of_o saint_n will_v necessary_o require_v that_o all_o who_o remain_v solicitous_a of_o their_o trial_n be_v assist_v by_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o live_n for_o present_a comfort_n and_o future_a rest_n that_o the_o live_a beg_v of_o god_n a_o part_n and_o interest_n in_o the_o benefit_n of_o those_o prayer_n which_o they_o who_o be_v so_o near_o to_o god_n in_o his_o kingdom_n tender_v he_o without_o cease_v for_o the_o church_n upon_o earth_n as_o for_o prayer_n for_o the_o translate_n of_o soul_n out_o of_o purgatory_n the_o beginning_n of_o their_o come_n into_o the_o church_n be_v visible_a and_o so_o be_v the_o come_n in_o of_o those_o prayer_n which_o call_v upon_o the_o depart_v of_o prayer_n to_o the_o saint_n depart_v saint_n depart_v by_o name_n in_o any_o public_a office_n of_o devotion_n in_o the_o church_n the_o voluntary_a devotion_n of_o private_a person_n most_o of_o they_o ignorant_a and_o carnal_a be_v no_o argument_n of_o the_o original_a and_o general_a practice_n of_o the_o church_n and_o there_o be_v no_o mark_n of_o these_o invocation_n till_o procession_n be_v frequent_v with_o litany_n which_o consist_v most_o a_o end_n of_o they_o and_o can_v not_o be_v in_o use_n before_o the_o time_n of_o constantine_n but_o be_v not_o in_o use_n till_o a_o good_a while_n after_o it_o the_o abuse_n have_v increase_v so_o far_o especial_o in_o address_n to_o the_o bless_a virgin_n that_o the_o same_o thing_n be_v desire_v of_o they_o and_o in_o the_o same_o term_n in_o which_o they_o be_v desire_v of_o god_n even_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n that_o the_o appearance_n of_o devotion_n to_o the_o mother_n be_v visible_o and_o outward_o no_o less_o then_o to_o the_o son_n so_o that_o be_v there_o not_o a_o profession_n of_o that_o church_n extant_a contradict_v the_o proper_a sense_n of_o such_o prayer_n and_o force_v they_o that_o address_v they_o unless_o they_o will_v contradict_v themselves_o to_o abate_v their_o own_o meaning_n and_o to_o expound_v they_o to_o signify_v no_o more_o then_o obtain_v that_o of_o god_n which_o they_o be_v desire_v to_o grant_v of_o themselves_o they_o can_v not_o be_v excuse_v of_o idolatry_n but_o can_v by_o no_o mean_n be_v excuse_v for_o lead_v simple_a christian_n upon_o a_o precipice_n of_o such_o horrible_a danger_n by_o encourage_v both_o they_o and_o those_o that_o teach_v they_o such_o devotion_n for_o do_v not_o carnal_a superstition_n hope_v for_o temporal_a blessing_n from_o such_o voluntary_a application_n without_o that_o promise_n of_o god_n which_o the_o condition_n of_o our_o christianity_n engage_v how_o shall_v a_o christian_a be_v induce_v to_o go_v about_o by_o a_o saint_n that_o have_v immediate_a access_n to_o god_n to_o the_o same_o effect_n that_o which_o have_v be_v say_v of_o the_o primitive_a liturgy_n bar_v table_n no_o common_a prayer_n in_o the_o pulpit_n by_o gift_n but_o in_o a_o set_a form_n at_o the_o communion_n table_n the_o pretence_n of_o this_o time_n require_v the_o liturgy_n settle_v by_o law_n of_o this_o kingdom_n to_o be_v change_v upon_o a_o ground_n never_o hear_v of_o in_o the_o church_n for_o 1600_o year_n that_o every_o minister_n whether_o mean_v bishop_n priest_n and_o deacon_n or_o priest_n only_o be_v to_o have_v a_o gift_n in_o pray_v and_o that_o his_o people_n ought_v to_o pray_v that_o which_o his_o gift_n furnish_v and_o not_o that_o which_o the_o church_n prescribe_v and_o to_o the_o end_n that_o such_o gift_n may_v be_v use_v that_o no_o minister_n be_v tie_v to_o celebrate_v the_o eucharist_n above_o thrice_o a_o year_n and_o that_o in_o case_n he_o have_v convenient_a company_n but_o that_o they_o who_o age_n and_o infirmity_n enable_v they_o not_o to_o preach_v and_o pray_v thus_o in_o the_o pulpit_n read_v the_o service_n over_o and_o above_o be_v not_o tie_v to_o minister_v the_o service_n prescribe_v now_o will_v i_o have_v those_o that_o demand_v this_o to_o show_v i_o that_o ever_o the_o prayer_n for_o which_o the_o church_n meet_v be_v make_v in_o the_o pulpit_n for_o 1500_o year_n after_o christ_n i_o know_v i_o have_v allege_v a_o prayer_n of_o st._n ambrose_n before_o his_o sermon_n i_o know_v there_o be_v a_o passage_n of_o st._n augustine_n allege_v to_o the_o same_o purpose_n but_o neither_o of_o they_o signify_v any_o more_o than_o a_o prayer_n to_o god_n to_o bless_v they_o in_o their_o preach_n the_o common_a prayer_n of_o the_o church_n be_v another_o thing_n even_o that_o which_o i_o have_v say_v the_o common_a prayer_n of_o the_o church_n on_o all_o ordinary_a and_o solemn_a assembly_n be_v make_v at_o the_o altar_n because_o the_o eucharist_n be_v hold_v always_o and_o aught_o to_o be_v hold_v always_o the_o principal_a office_n of_o god_n service_n for_o which_o christian_n ought_v to_o assemble_v more_o frequent_o then_o there_o can_v be_v either_o ability_n or_o opportunity_n for_o preach_v and_o that_o which_o i_o have_v say_v of_o the_o primitive_a liturgy_n be_v full_a evidence_n hereof_o for_o i_o have_v show_v a_o set_a form_n of_o it_o which_o these_o man_n return_v a_o non_fw-la inventus_fw-la of_o to_z his_o majesty_n commission_n but_o that_o ever_o there_o be_v any_o prayer_n of_o the_o people_n use_v in_o the_o pulpit_n will_v
necessary_a in_o god_n service_n what_o kind_n of_o signification_n requisite_a not_o enough_o for_o the_o presbyterian_o to_o allow_v ceremony_n the_o determine_n of_o time_n and_o place_n and_o person_n by_o church_n the_o lord_n day_n observe_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n which_o and_o at_o which_o of_o the_o circumstance_n and_o ceremony_n of_o the_o form_n and_o order_n according_a to_o which_o the_o service_n of_o god_n be_v to_o be_v celebrate_v be_v the_o office_n and_o therefore_o be_v within_o the_o power_n of_o the_o church_n the_o substance_n of_o christianity_n wherein_o salvation_n consist_v be_v determine_v by_o our_o lord_n in_o person_n to_o his_o apostle_n that_o which_o he_o trust_v they_o with_o be_v the_o regulate_v of_o his_o church_n suppose_v the_o same_o christianity_n that_o god_n may_v be_v serve_v by_o the_o assembly_n of_o such_o as_o may_v appear_v to_o profess_v it_o that_o which_o he_o trust_v the_o apostle_n with_o the_o church_n remain_v of_o necessity_n trust_v with_o by_o the_o apostle_n save_v the_o personal_a gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o the_o apostle_n render_v their_o act_n blameless_a in_o that_o estate_n for_o which_o they_o be_v make_v though_o not_o sufficient_a for_o all_o estate_n of_o the_o church_n otherwise_o the_o power_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v the_o power_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o oblige_v the_o part_n of_o the_o church_n not_o to_o transgress_v the_o act_n of_o it_o because_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n be_v equal_o concern_v in_o they_o and_o the_o substance_n of_o christianity_n in_o neither_o of_o both_o this_o discover_v the_o superstition_n of_o that_o imposture_n which_o be_v pretend_v by_o derive_v the_o obligation_n of_o the_o lord_n day_n from_o the_o jewish_a sabbath_n for_o what_o reason_n can_v endure_v that_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v bind_v to_o keep_v the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n by_o that_o precept_n which_o tie_v the_o synagogue_n to_o keep_v the_o last_o day_n of_o the_o week_n see_v then_o the_o obligation_n of_o it_o be_v to_o be_v derive_v from_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n that_o be_v from_o the_o power_n of_o the_o church_n for_o be_v once_o receive_v by_o the_o whole_a church_n it_o be_v for_o ever_o receive_v to_o the_o same_o effect_n if_o the_o premise_n be_v true_a it_o be_v the_o same_o obligation_n that_o tie_v all_o to_o observe_v the_o time_n appoint_v for_o the_o service_n of_o god_n by_o the_o church_n whether_o fast_v day_n or_o festival_n the_o example_n of_o the_o primitive_a christian_n at_o jerusalem_n justifi_v st._n hierome_n and_o other_o of_o the_o father_n affirm_v that_o the_o church_n shall_v and_o will_v serve_v god_n continual_o in_o public_a can_v the_o business_n of_o the_o world_n stand_v with_o it_o and_o therefore_o that_o order_n be_v to_o be_v account_v most_o christian_n that_o provide_v most_o opportunity_n for_o frequent_v the_o public_a service_n of_o god_n if_o this_o be_v consider_v it_o will_v appear_v a_o mere_a imposture_n observe_v therefore_o other_o festival_n and_o time_n of_o fast_v be_v to_o be_v observe_v to_o demand_v that_o the_o lord_n day_n be_v celebrate_v with_o sermon_n morning_n and_o evening_n and_o arbitrary_a prayer_n to_o usher_v they_o in_o and_o out_o tread_v underfeet_n all_o other_o time_n set_v apart_o by_o the_o whole_a church_n for_o the_o service_n of_o god_n by_o such_o office_n as_o it_o enjoin_v if_o we_o weigh_v by_o our_o own_o weight_n and_o mete_v by_o our_o own_o measure_n not_o only_o the_o mystery_n of_o our_o lord_n dispensation_n in_o the_o flesh_n but_o the_o memory_n of_o his_o apostle_n and_o saint_n not_o only_o the_o time_n of_o len●_n and_o the_o wednesday_n and_o fridays_n but_o the_o time_n of_o advent_n the_o evens_n of_o festival_n the_o ember_n and_o r●gation_n day_n once_o appoint_v to_o that_o purpose_n must_v still_o be_v solemnize_v for_o the_o festival_n and_o fast_n of_o god_n church_n to_o set_v a_o peculiar_a mark_n upon_o the_o lord_n day_n as_o if_o the_o time_n of_o it_o be_v more_o oblige_v than_o other_o time_n that_o be_v appoint_v to_o the_o same_o purpose_n be_v to_o change_v the_o day_n but_o to_o retain_v the_o jew_n superstition_n as_o calvin_n most_o true_o have_v tell_v they_o who_o in_o other_o thing_n commit_v idolatry_n to_o his_o opinion_n but_o wherein_o he_o follow_v the_o whole_a church_n in_o this_o point_n and_o in_o the_o state_n of_o soul_n before_o the_o resurrection_n bid_v he_o farewell_n the_o case_n be_v the_o same_o in_o the_o quality_n of_o place_n as_o well_o as_o of_o sacrament_n how_o place_n and_o person_n become_v qualify_v for_o god_n service_n preach_v not_o convertible_a with_o minister_a the_o sacrament_n person_n for_o the_o exercise_n of_o christianity_n by_o the_o law_n of_o this_o kingdom_n there_o must_v be_v place_n where_o all_o must_v meet_v they_o must_v be_v limit_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n they_o must_v not_o be_v balk_v for_o other_o place_n of_o man_n private_a choice_n but_o by_o those_o that_o be_v willing_a to_o be_v charge_v with_o schism_n for_o do_v it_o they_o that_o quarrel_n the_o bishop_n power_n in_o all_o other_o thing_n must_v call_v this_o also_o in_o question_n when_o they_o mean_v to_o weigh_v by_o their_o own_o weight_n and_o mete_v by_o their_o own_o measure_n they_o be_v very_o studious_a to_o confound_v the_o difference_n between_o priest_n and_o deacon_n by_o have_v all_o call_v minister_n be_v a_o term_n that_o may_v serve_v all_o order_n minister_a those_o office_n which_o the_o church_n enable_v they_o to_o minister_v but_o they_o who_o will_v impose_v this_o sense_n upon_o the_o stile_n of_o minister_n of_o god_n word_n and_o sacrament_n that_o all_o and_o no_o other_o but_o they_o who_o be_v ordain_v to_o preach_v be_v ordain_v also_o to_o baptise_v and_o celebrate_v the_o eucharist_n must_v be_v tell_v that_o this_o be_v a_o imposture_n till_o they_o show_v better_a reason_n for_o it_o than_o hitherto_o have_v be_v show_v for_o i_o conceive_v i_o have_v show_v sufficient_a reason_n that_o the_o power_n of_o celebrate_v the_o eucharist_n be_v convertible_a with_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n qualify_a all_o christian_n for_o the_o eucharist_n which_o in_o the_o bishop_n only_o extend_v to_o public_a cause_n concern_v his_o whole_a church_n or_o diocese_n but_o in_o all_o presbyter_n to_o private_a cause_n wherein_o it_o may_v be_v questionable_a between_o god_n and_o the_o conscience_n whether_o a_o christian_a be_v qualify_v for_o the_o eucharist_n or_o not_o as_o for_o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n that_o as_o the_o bishop_n only_o allow_v it_o in_o any_o case_n that_o may_v be_v questionable_a so_o the_o minister_a of_o it_o may_v come_v to_o a_o deacon_n in_o the_o priest_n absence_n nay_o to_o a_o layman_n rather_o than_o that_o any_o child_n shall_v die_v unbaptise_v neither_o be_v the_o office_n of_o preach_v restrain_v either_o to_o priest_n or_o deacon_n alone_o by_o any_o other_o authority_n then_o that_o of_o god_n whole_a church_n which_o be_v once_o pass_v in_o the_o case_n by_o the_o general_a custom_n and_o practice_n of_o it_o it_o must_v be_v the_o great_a sacrilege_n in_o the_o world_n that_o be_v the_o sacrilege_n of_o schism_n to_o transgress_v it_o the_o respect_n due_a to_o the_o memory_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o other_o gospel_n time_n place_n person_n and_o thing_n consecrate_v to_o god_n service_n under_o the_o gospel_n saint_n and_o martyr_n of_o christ_n be_v a_o reason_n sufficient_a to_o determine_v the_o time_n and_o place_n for_o the_o service_n of_o god_n to_o question_n that_o they_o be_v not_o just_a occasion_n for_o the_o consecrate_v of_o festival_n and_o of_o church_n to_o the_o service_n of_o god_n in_o honour_n of_o their_o memory_n be_v a_o just_a presumption_n that_o man_n seek_v to_o be_v save_v by_o some_o other_o christianity_n then_o that_o which_o their_o doctrine_n and_o their_o blood_n plant_v but_o their_o name_n and_o the_o festival_n and_o the_o church_n that_o bear_v their_o name_n be_v but_o circumstance_n determine_v that_o service_n to_o be_v acceptable_a to_o god_n which_o be_v perform_v in_o the_o unity_n of_o his_o church_n the_o authority_n whereof_o assign_v they_o to_o that_o purpose_n no_o more_o be_v the_o utensil_n and_o ornament_n of_o church_n the_o vessel_n in_o which_o the_o sacrament_n be_v celebrate_v but_o they_o who_o think_v it_o superstition_n that_o these_o thing_n shall_v be_v set_v apart_o from_o vulgar_a use_n and_o reserve_v only_o for_o god_n service_n plain_o commit_v idolatry_n to_o their_o own_o imagination_n in_o it_o for_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o consecration_n be_v in_o force_n not_o only_o by_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n but_o before_o it_o under_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n as_o the_o
father_n call_v it_o under_o those_o precept_n which_o god_n give_v noah_n after_o the_o flood_n as_o the_o jew_n will_v have_v it_o and_o therefore_o it_o tend_v not_o only_o to_o figure_n christ_n to_o come_v but_o to_o maintain_v the_o service_n of_o god_n and_o that_o reverence_n which_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v perform_v with_o what_o colour_n can_v there_o be_v that_o the_o consecration_n that_o be_v in_o force_n by_o the_o law_n be_v figurative_a of_o christ_n to_o come_v and_o the_o sacrilege_n of_o judas_n as_o well_o as_o of_o ananias_n and_o sapphira_n remain_v unquestionable_a because_o the_o subsistence_n of_o the_o church_n upon_o oblation_n consecrate_v to_o that_o purpose_n from_o the_o beginning_n be_v as_o visible_a as_o the_o church_n as_o for_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n from_o the_o beginning_n he_o that_o believe_v the_o unity_n thereof_o can_v question_v it_o they_o therefore_o that_o have_v the_o impudence_n to_o make_v that_o superstition_n which_o the_o people_n of_o god_n both_o before_o and_o since_o christ_n have_v always_o use_v for_o the_o service_n of_o god_n do_v they_o not_o commit_v idolatry_n to_o their_o own_o imagination_n which_o they_o prefer_v so_o far_o before_o all_o the_o world_n beside_o indeed_o the_o solemnity_n of_o consecration_n require_v a_o further_a question_n of_o ceremony_n in_o the_o service_n of_o god_n whether_o or_o no_o they_o be_v for_o the_o advantage_n of_o god_n service_n whether_o or_o no_o it_o be_v in_o the_o power_n of_o the_o church_n to_o determine_v they_o for_o that_o purpose_n for_o the_o solemnity_n of_o consecration_n pass_v not_o without_o ceremony_n we_o have_v this_o character_n of_o the_o presbyterian_o publish_v for_o service_n ceremony_n fignisy_v by_o institution_n necessary_a in_o god_n service_n their_o advantage_n that_o they_o allow_v the_o natural_a expression_n of_o reverence_n and_o devotion_n as_o kneel_v and_o lift_v up_o of_o the_o hand_n and_o eye_n in_o prayer_n as_o also_o those_o mere_a circumstance_n of_o decency_n and_o order_n the_o omission_n whereof_o will_v make_v the_o service_n of_o god_n either_o not_o decent_a or_o less_o decent_a but_o ceremony_n of_o institute_v mystical_a signification_n they_o allow_v not_o but_o be_v not_o the_o mystery_n of_o christianity_n the_o incarnation_n death_n resurrection_n and_o ascension_n of_o christ_n thing_n institute_v by_o god_n not_o determine_v by_o nature_n be_v not_o the_o signify_v of_o they_o whereby_o they_o come_v to_o remembrance_n the_o mean_n to_o procure_v and_o to_o increase_v that_o reverence_n and_o devotion_n which_o we_o be_v to_o attend_v the_o service_n of_o god_n with_o and_o the_o inward_a affection_n which_o it_o express_v and_o why_o not_o then_o ceremony_n institute_v to_o signify_v thing_n which_o god_n grace_n not_o nature_n determine_v shall_v it_o be_v christianity_n to_o believe_v the_o institution_n of_o thing_n above_o nature_n for_o our_o salvation_n by_o god_n grace_n and_o shall_v it_o be_v prejudicial_a to_o christianity_n to_o institute_v the_o mean_n of_o procure_v that_o reverence_n and_o devotion_n which_o the_o remembrance_n of_o they_o in_o the_o public_a service_n of_o god_n require_v shall_v the_o worship_n of_o god_n by_o christian_n be_v tie_v to_o signify_v no_o more_o than_o nature_n direct_v jew_n mahometan_n and_o pagan_n to_o signify_v by_o it_o compare_v this_o new_a gospel_n with_o the_o perpetual_a practice_n of_o god_n people_n whether_o before_o or_o after_o the_o law_n whether_o before_o or_o after_o christ_n and_o you_o shall_v easy_o see_v that_o it_o can_v be_v account_v superstition_n but_o by_o those_o that_o commit_v idolatry_n to_o their_o own_o imagination_n let_v the_o signification_n be_v that_o which_o natural_a reason_n be_v able_a to_o requisite_a what_o kind_n of_o signification_n requisite_a interpret_v in_o all_o sort_n of_o christian_n and_o whether_o they_o allow_v it_o to_o be_v call_v mystical_a or_o not_o they_o must_v allow_v it_o as_o proper_o religious_a that_o be_v as_o tend_v to_o advance_v that_o devotion_n which_o the_o religion_n of_o a_o christian_a signify_v in_o the_o point_n of_o god_n service_n and_o true_o i_o do_v not_o nor_o do_v this_o church_n to_o my_o knowledge_n allow_v the_o ceremony_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o signification_n whereof_o be_v not_o to_o be_v understand_v by_o all_o sort_n of_o christian_n but_o require_v book_n of_o learning_n to_o interpret_v their_o signification_n they_o that_o serve_v god_n in_o a_o language_n unknown_a to_o the_o people_n do_v according_o when_o they_o serve_v he_o with_o ceremony_n which_o they_o can_v understand_v allow_v it_o reformation_n to_o serve_v god_n in_o english_a i_o allow_v it_o reformation_n to_o cut_v off_o the_o superfluity_n of_o such_o ceremony_n as_o steal_v the_o nourishment_n of_o devotion_n from_o the_o heart_n wherein_o god_n have_v place_v his_o service_n and_o therefore_o i_o think_v it_o reason_n to_o submit_v to_o this_o issue_n whether_o or_o no_o the_o ceremony_n in_o question_n be_v according_a to_o the_o use_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n which_o the_o reformation_n pretend_v or_o shall_v pretend_v to_o restore_v for_o i_o find_v that_o in_o the_o primitive_a and_o good_a time_n of_o christianity_n the_o church_n be_v far_o enough_o from_o seek_v such_o abstruse_a and_o far_o fetch_v signification_n and_o that_o be_v a_o visible_a rule_n which_o the_o common_a profession_n of_o reformation_n determine_v but_o i_o allow_v no_o man_n to_o allege_v the_o use_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n grow_v out_o of_o use_n long_o before_o the_o reformation_n in_o bar_n to_o any_o ceremony_n now_o settle_v by_o law_n not_o weigh_v by_o the_o same_o weight_n nor_o meet_v by_o the_o same_o measure_n in_o all_o other_o thing_n it_o be_v neither_o good_a conscience_n in_o they_o nor_o will_v be_v in_o the_o public_a to_o change_v a_o law_n of_o the_o land_n upon_o a_o pretence_n which_o they_o that_o allege_v will_v not_o stand_v to_o in_o another_o case_n but_o be_v it_o enough_o for_o presbyterian_o to_o allow_v ceremony_n which_o ceremony_n not_o enough_o for_o the_o presbyterian_o to_o allow_v ceremony_n nature_n teach_v to_o allow_v order_n and_o decency_n in_o circumstance_n have_v they_o debauch_v this_o wretched_a people_n to_o such_o horrible_a profaneness_n and_o irreverence_n that_o they_o can_v think_v fit_a to_o pray_v sit_v on_o their_o seat_n to_o such_o barbarous_a confusion_n that_o they_o can_v think_v every_o man_n own_o fancy_n the_o best_a order_n to_o exercise_v the_o liberty_n of_o christian_n in_o god_n service_n and_o now_o think_v to_o satisfy_v with_o allow_v the_o contrary_a what_o shall_v the_o church_n gain_v by_o reconcile_a they_o if_o have_v contribute_v so_o much_o to_o the_o destruction_n of_o order_n they_o contribute_v not_o more_o than_o so_o to_o the_o restore_n of_o it_o but_o that_o must_v be_v the_o care_n of_o superior_n i_o will_v only_o mention_v the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n a_o ceremony_n of_o so_o much_o reverence_n and_o so_o general_a use_n in_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o god_n from_o the_o beginning_n that_o nothing_o but_o the_o difficulty_n of_o recall_v it_o preserve_v unity_n among_o ourselves_o can_v excuse_v this_o church_n for_o not_o restore_v it_o in_o many_o other_o office_n but_o to_o put_v it_o out_o of_o the_o office_n of_o baptism_n will_v be_v to_o condemn_v the_o whole_a church_n of_o god_n without_o give_v satisfaction_n to_o they_o who_o have_v obtain_v the_o silence_v of_o it_o in_o consecrate_v the_o eucharist_n according_a to_o the_o liturgy_n under_o edward_n vi_o have_v thereby_o be_v encourage_v to_o demand_v so_o much_o more_o chap._n xviii_o office_n which_o the_o father_n call_v sacrament_n for_o their_o ceremony_n why_o the_o bishop_n only_o confirm_v the_o effect_n of_o ordination_n require_v ceremony_n in_o give_v it_o why_o the_o ordination_n of_o our_o presbyter_n be_v void_a the_o necessity_n of_o penance_n the_o observation_n of_o lent_n and_o the_o use_v of_o it_o the_o necessity_n of_o private_a penance_n for_o the_o cure_n of_o secret_a sin_n of_o anoint_v the_o sick_a according_a to_o s._n james_n marriage_n of_o christian_n not_o to_o be_v rule_v by_o moses_n law_n institute_v ceremony_n be_v sacrament_n with_o the_o father_n the_o ceremony_n of_o these_o office_n justify_v institute_v ceremony_n but_o for_o the_o justify_n of_o ceremony_n why_o shall_v i_o allege_v ceremony_n office_n which_o the_o father_n call_v sacrament_n for_o their_o ceremony_n any_o thing_n but_o those_o office_n of_o the_o church_n which_o the_o father_n have_v call_v sacrament_n as_o well_o as_o baptism_n and_o the_o eucharist_n i_o conceive_v i_o have_v allege_v so_o sufficient_a a_o reason_n for_o the_o difference_n between_o those_o two_o and_o the_o rest_n that_o slander_n itself_o can_v undertake_v to_o blast_v my_o meaning_n in_o that_o point_n for_o thing_n
come_v without_o peradventure_o from_o the_o apostle_n as_o for_o marriage_n the_o solemnity_n of_o the_o blessing_n the_o ring_n the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n which_o according_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n it_o ought_v to_o be_v minister_v with_o will_v easy_o make_v it_o a_o sacrament_n though_o imposition_n of_o hand_n which_o be_v say_v still_o to_o be_v use_v in_o some_o eastern_a church_n be_v not_o use_v at_o all_o in_o the_o west_n so_o the_o effect_n and_o consequence_n of_o these_o office_n will_v oblige_v the_o church_n always_o to_o keep_v they_o in_o use_n though_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n make_v they_o sacrament_n but_o that_o sense_n in_o which_o the_o ancient_a church_n make_v they_o sacrament_n serve_v only_o to_o justify_v the_o power_n of_o institute_v ceremony_n in_o the_o church_n chap._n xix_o the_o worship_n of_o the_o host_n in_o the_o papacy_n be_v not_o idolatry_n christianity_n will_v sanctify_v kneel_v at_o the_o eucharist_n though_o it_o be_v what_o image_n the_o second_o commandment_n forbid_v reverence_v of_o image_n in_o church_n be_v not_o idolatry_n of_o honour_v image_n and_o of_o have_v they_o in_o church_n mutual_a forbearance_n which_o st._n paul_n enjoin_v the_o roman_n not_o enjoin_v elsewhere_o tender_a conscience_n be_v to_o submit_v to_o superior_n they_o who_o give_v the_o honour_n proper_a to_o god_n to_o his_o creature_n be_v idolatry_n the_o worship_n of_o the_o host_n in_o the_o papacy_n be_v not_o idolatry_n idolater_n they_o that_o worship_v the_o host_n give_v the_o honour_n due_a to_o god_n to_o his_o creature_n this_o be_v take_v for_o a_o demonstration_n that_o the_o worship_n of_o the_o host_n be_v idolatry_n but_o will_v any_o papist_n acknowledge_v that_o he_o honour_v the_o element_n of_o the_o eucharist_n or_o as_o he_o think_v the_o accident_n of_o they_o for_o god_n will_v common_a reason_n charge_v he_o to_o honour_n that_o which_o he_o believe_v not_o to_o be_v there_o a_o pagan_a that_o honour_v the_o sun_n for_o god_n believe_v he_o to_o be_v god_n and_o therefore_o another_o pagan_a may_v as_o well_o believe_v another_o creature_n to_o be_v god_n both_o idolater_n for_o think_v the_o godhead_n to_o be_v in_o one_o or_o more_o creature_n but_o those_o great_a idolater_n who_o think_v that_o the_o godhead_n to_o which_o they_o take_v man_n whether_o live_v or_o dead_a or_o other_o creature_n to_o be_v advance_v be_v enclose_v in_o their_o image_n consecrate_v to_o the_o worship_n of_o they_o he_o that_o worship_v the_o host_n believe_v our_o lord_n christ_n to_o be_v the_o only_a true_a god_n hypostatical_o unite_v to_o our_o flesh_n and_o blood_n which_o be_v present_a in_o the_o eucharist_n in_o such_o a_o manner_n as_o it_o be_v not_o present_v every_o where_n there_o be_v due_a occasion_n to_o give_v it_o that_o worship_n in_o the_o eucharist_n which_o the_o godhead_n in_o our_o manhood_n be_v to_o be_v worship_v with_o upon_o all_o due_a occasion_n thus_o we_o say_v he_o be_v worship_v in_o the_o ancient_a church_n that_o believe_v the_o element_n to_o be_v present_a and_o they_o be_v no_o idolater_n they_o that_o worship_v the_o host_n do_v not_o believe_v that_o they_o remain_v nay_o they_o say_v they_o must_v be_v flat_a idolater_n if_o they_o be_v there_o zeal_n to_o their_o opinion_n make_v they_o say_v more_o than_o they_o shall_v say_v but_o if_o they_o be_v there_o they_o will_v not_o take_v they_o for_o god_n and_o therefore_o they_o will_v not_o honour_v they_o for_o god_n and_o that_o be_v it_o not_o say_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v idolater_n if_o the_o element_n do_v remain_v that_o must_v make_v they_o idolater_n they_o that_o believe_v not_o transubstantiation_n have_v cause_n to_o forbear_v be_v christianity_n will_v sanctify_v kneel_v at_o the_o eucharist_n though_o it_o be_v the_o ceremony_n but_o forbear_v kneel_v at_o receive_v the_o eucharist_n in_o a_o age_n that_o be_v teach_v already_o to_o sit_v at_o their_o prayer_n and_o who_o w●ll_n warrant_v that_o all_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v not_o come_v in_o a_o short_a time_n to_o hear_v the_o minister_n exercise_v his_o gift_n and_o censure_v he_o for_o it_o be_v worship_v the_o host_n idolatry_n christianity_n use_v the_o gesture_n of_o kneel_v to_o signify_v the_o worship_n of_o christ_n be_v enough_o to_o sanctify_v it_o to_o god_n service_n and_o this_o they_o must_v grant_v who_o serve_v god_n in_o church_n which_o the_o mass_n have_v be_v use_v in_o take_v the_o mass_n for_o idolatry_n as_o they_o do_v in_o fine_a jew_n and_o mahometans_n be_v bind_v to_o take_v the_o worship_n o●_n the_o host_n for_o idolatry_n for_o they_o will_v needs_o take_v the_o worship_n of_o the_o holy_a trinity_n for_o no_o less_o but_o they_o who_o know_v that_o the_o godhead_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o reason_n for_o which_o his_o flesh_n and_o blood_n be_v worship_v in_o the_o eucharist_n can_v take_v that_o worship_n for_o idolatry_n because_o his_o flesh_n and_o blood_n be_v not_o present_a in_o the_o eucharist_n as_o they_o who_o worship_v it_o there_o think_v it_o be_v for_o they_o know_v that_o the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v no_o idol_n to_o christian_n wheresoever_o it_o be_v worship_v whether_o or_o no_o have_v image_n in_o church_n be_v a_o breach_n of_o forbid_v what_o image_n the_o second_o commandment_n forbid_v the_o second_o commandment_n can_v be_v no_o more_o question_n then_o whether_o or_o no_o to_o have_v any_o image_n be_v a_o breach_n of_o it_o for_o it_o must_v forbid_v image_n in_o church_n because_o it_o forbid_v all_o image_n if_o it_o be_v interpret_v to_o forbid_v only_a idol_n that_o be_v image_n of_o false_a god_n it_o must_v be_v prove_v that_o all_o image_n in_o church_n be_v idol_n before_o it_o be_v prove_v that_o they_o be_v forbid_v by_o it_o it_o be_v far_o more_o reasonable_a to_o say_v that_o the_o cherubim_n the_o brazen_a serpent_n the_o bull_n and_o other_o image_n in_o solomon_n temple_n be_v no_o breach_n of_o it_o then_o to_o say_v that_o god_n do_v dispense_v with_o his_o own_o precept_n in_o those_o case_n have_v no_o appearance_n of_o any_o dispensation_n in_o the_o scripture_n in_o which_o the_o precept_n and_o the_o seem_a breach_n be_v both_o record_v but_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o the_o jew_n allow_v some_o kind_n of_o imagery_n and_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o the_o mahometans_n do_v the_o like_a and_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o the_o public_a authority_n of_o that_o nation_n or_o religion_n can_v never_o dispense_v in_o that_o which_o god_n law_n have_v prohibit_v but_o it_o be_v manifest_a on_o the_o contrary_a that_o it_o do_v and_o may_v restrain_v that_o which_o god_n law_n have_v license_v to_o set_v a_o hedge_n about_o the_o law_n and_o keep_v the_o people_n further_o from_o break_v it_o now_o their_o restraint_n tie_v not_o christian_n but_o jew_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o the_o church_n be_v tie_v no_o further_o then_o there_o can_v appear_v danger_n of_o idolatry_n which_o if_o it_o be_v so_o heighten_v beyond_o appearance_n as_o to_o involve_v the_o church_n in_o the_o crime_n of_o it_o charge_v the_o schism_n that_o may_v come_v by_o that_o mean_n upon_o those_o that_o so_o inhanse_v it_o now_o grant_v that_o epiphanius_n and_o the_o council_n of_o elvira_n do_v hold_v all_o image_n in_o church_n dangerous_a for_o idolatry_n of_o idolatry_n reverence_v of_o image_n in_o church_n be_v not_o idolatry_n which_o there_o be_v appearance_n it_o be_v manifest_a that_o they_o be_v afterward_o admit_v all_o over_o and_o there_o may_v be_v jealousy_n of_o offence_n in_o have_v image_n in_o church_n before_o idolatry_n be_v quite_o root_v out_o of_o which_o afterward_o there_o may_v be_v no_o appearance_n but_o no_o manner_n of_o appearance_n that_o image_n in_o history_n shall_v occasion_v idolatry_n to_o those_o image_n in_o they_o that_o hold_v they_o the_o image_n of_o god_n creature_n such_o as_o be_v those_o image_n which_o represent_v history_n of_o the_o saint_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n or_o other_o relation_n of_o unquestionable_a credit_n the_o second_o council_n of_o nicaea_n seem_v to_o have_v bring_v in_o or_o authorize_v address_n to_o solitary_a image_n of_o saint_n place_v upon_o pillar_n to_o that_o purpose_n whereof_o there_o be_v much_o mention_n in_o the_o record_n of_o it_o but_o to_o the_o image_n of_o saint_n there_o can_v be_v no_o idolatry_n so_o long_o as_o man_n take_v they_o for_o saint_n that_o be_v god_n creature_n much_o less_o to_o the_o image_n of_o our_o lord_n for_o it_o be_v the_o honour_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o not_o of_o his_o image_n whereas_o they_o who_o think_v their_o false_a god_n to_o dwell_v in_o their_o image_n which_o think_v make_v they_o idol_n
must_v needs_o honour_v they_o with_o the_o honour_n proper_a to_o god_n though_o in_o so_o do_v they_o honour_v indeed_o the_o devil_n that_o bring_v in_o idol_n nay_o the_o council_n itself_o though_o it_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o image_n itself_o be_v honour_v by_o the_o honour_n give_v to_o that_o which_o it_o signify_v before_o the_o image_n yet_o it_o distinguish_v this_o honour_n from_o the_o honour_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o therefore_o teach_v not_o idolatry_n by_o teach_v to_o honour_v image_n though_o it_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o image_n itself_o be_v honour_v when_o it_o need_v not_o for_o indeed_o and_o in_o truth_n it_o be_v not_o the_o image_n but_o the_o principal_a church_n of_o honour_v image_n and_o of_o have_v they_o in_o church_n that_o be_v honour_v by_o the_o honour_n that_o be_v say_v to_o be_v do_v to_o the_o image_n because_o it_o be_v do_v before_o the_o image_n the_o furniture_n and_o utensil_n of_o the_o church_n be_v honour_v in_o the_o spotless_a time_n of_o the_o church_n as_o consecrate_v to_o god_n service_n though_o the_o honour_n of_o they_o be_v uncapable_a of_o honour_n for_o themselves_o be_v manifest_o and_o without_o any_o scruple_n the_o honour_n of_o god_n but_o image_n so_o long_o as_o they_o be_v use_v to_o no_o further_a intent_n than_o the_o ornament_n of_o church_n the_o remembrance_n of_o holy_a history_n and_o the_o raise_n of_o devotion_n thereby_o as_o at_o the_o first_o they_o be_v use_v by_o the_o church_n come_v in_o the_o number_n of_o thing_n consecrate_v to_o god_n service_n and_o that_o council_n be_v never_o of_o force_n in_o the_o west_n till_o the_o usurp_a power_n of_o the_o pope_n bring_v it_o in_o by_o force_n nor_o do_v the_o western_a church_n when_o it_o refuse_v the_o council_n discharge_v the_o have_v of_o image_n in_o church_n upon_o those_o reason_n and_o to_o those_o purpose_n which_o i_o have_v declare_v so_o far_o they_o remain_v still_o justifiable_a for_o he_o that_o see_v the_o whole_a church_n on_o the_o one_o side_n and_o only_a calvin_n on_o the_o other_o side_n have_v he_o not_o cause_n to_o fear_v that_o they_o who_o make_v they_o idolater_n without_o cause_n will_v themselves_o appear_v schismatic_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n for_o it_o for_o what_o be_v they_o else_o who_o please_v themselves_o in_o a_o strange_a kind_n of_o negative_a superstition_n that_o they_o can_v serve_v god_n if_o they_o serve_v he_o with_o visible_a sign_n of_o reverence_n who_o hate_v the_o image_n because_o they_o hate_v the_o saint_n themselves_o and_o their_o christianity_n and_o therefore_o that_o it_o be_v not_o think_v that_o we_o be_v tie_v to_o those_o term_n of_o distance_n which_o ignorant_a preacher_n drive_v their_o faction_n with_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o declare_v the_o ground_n of_o truth_n though_o it_o displease_v st._n paul_n write_v to_o the_o roman_n that_o be_v partly_o jew_n elsewhere_o mutual_a forbearance_n which_o s._n paul_n enjoin_v the_o roman_n not_o enjoin_v elsewhere_o partly_o gentile_n convert_v to_o christianity_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o whole_a epistle_n forbid_v they_o to_o condemn_v or_o despise_v one_o another_o for_o make_v conscience_n of_o thing_n meat_n and_o time_n he_o express●th_v forbid_v by_o the_o law_n or_o for_o use_v they_o without_o difference_n hence_o it_o be_v now_o argue_v that_o nothing_o can_v be_v impose_v upon_o any_o christian_n which_o out_o of_o tenderness_n of_o conscience_n he_o may_v think_v it_o against_o god_n law_n for_o he_o to_o do_v the_o answer_n be_v by_o deny_v the_o consequence_n and_o the_o reason_n because_o it_o be_v a_o particular_a order_n of_o st._n paul_n to_o that_o church_n for_o the_o present_a estate_n of_o it_o at_o that_o time_n and_o therefore_o it_o do_v not_o follow_v that_o the_o church_n can_v make_v no_o law_n for_o it_o can_v make_v no_o law_n if_o it_o be_v enough_o to_o discharge_v any_o man_n that_o it_o be_v against_o his_o conscience_n to_o obey_v the_o evidence_n for_o this_o reason_n be_v this_o because_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o apostle_n do_v order_n otherwise_o in_o the_o same_o cause_n when_o the_o case_n be_v not_o the_o same_o for_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o the_o apostle_n and_o elder_n at_o jerusalem_n have_v make_v a_o act_n in_o council_n command_v the_o gentile_n that_o be_v convert_v to_o christianity_n to_o abstain_v from_o fornication_n and_o thing_n offer_v in_o sacrifice_n to_o idol_n from_o thing_n strangle_v and_o from_o blood_n in_o fine_a from_o those_o thing_n from_o which_o stranger_n that_o be_v license_v by_o the_o law_n to_o live_v in_o the_o land_n of_o promise_n be_v hound_n to_o abstain_v and_o may_v not_o those_o convert_a gentile_n have_v scruple_v whether_o or_o no_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o they_o to_o be_v so_o far_o jew_n have_v not_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v sufficient_a to_o put_v a_o end_n to_o their_o scruple_n but_o it_o be_v manifest_a likewise_o that_o when_o st._n paul_n differ_v with_o st._n peter_n at_o antiochia_n about_o the_o necessity_n of_o compliance_n with_o the_o jew_n for_o gentile_n turn_v christian_n he_o do_v forbid_v and_o must_v needs_o forbid_v his_o follower_n to_o show_v this_o compliance_n lest_o by_o that_o mean_n he_o may_v hold_v they_o in_o a_o opinion_n of_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o law_n for_o the_o salvation_n of_o christian_n here_o be_v contrary_a provision_n with_o force_n of_o law_n in_o that_o very_a case_n wherein_o st._n paul_n command_v only_o mutual_a forbearance_n at_o rome_n in_o that_o estate_n wherein_o he_o write_v his_o epistle_n and_o if_o st._n paul_n be_v in_o the_o right_a which_o they_o who_o take_v his_o writing_n for_o scripture_n do_v not_o doubt_v then_o be_v st._n peter_n follower_n bind_v to_o obey_v he_o notwithstanding_o any_o tenderness_n in_o their_o conscience_n and_o he_o command_v tit._n i._n 10-15_a to_o stop_v the_o mouth_n of_o those_o deceiver_n of_o the_o circumcision_n that_o will_v not_o have_v all_o thing_n pure_a to_o the_o pure_a because_o their_o own_o conscience_n be_v defile_v notwithstanding_o that_o they_o must_v needs_o have_v follower_n that_o be_v touch_v in_o conscience_n to_o think_v those_o thing_n unlawful_a which_o the_o law_n allow_v not_o and_o their_o teacher_n mouth_n be_v stop_v be_v the_o hearer_n at_o their_o choice_n whether_o they_o will_v follow_v they_o or_o not_o whereby_o it_o appear_v that_o inferior_n be_v to_o follow_v the_o judgement_n superiors_n te●der_o conscience_n be_v to_o submit_v to_o superiors_n of_o superior_n in_o matter_n subject_a to_o the_o power_n of_o superior_n notwithstanding_o the_o scruple_n of_o their_o own_o conscience_n to_o the_o contrary_n and_o that_o the_o reason_n why_o the_o roman_n be_v forbid_v to_o condemn_v command_v to_o forbear_v one_o another_o be_v because_o st._n paul_n think_v it_o not_o meet_v to_o order_v any_o thing_n else_o in_o the_o business_n during_o that_o estate_n see_v that_o he_o order_v otherwise_o in_o it_o for_o other_o estate_n so_o that_o all_o that_o remain_v be_v whether_o the_o matter_n in_o question_n ●ee_n within_o the_o power_n of_o superior_n or_o not_o in_o which_o there_o can_v be_v no_o doubt_n among_o we_o the_o matter_n in_o question_n be_v acknowledge_v indifferent_a in_o themselves_o and_o therefore_o capable_a to_o signify_v that_o which_o christianity_n not_o only_o allow_v but_o require_v and_o certain_o there_o be_v no_o law_n whether_o ecclesiastical_a or_o civil_a that_o error_n may_v not_o scruple_n at_o as_o inconsistent_a with_o a_o good_a conscience_n why_o shall_v not_o i_o believe_v that_o a_o quaker_n be_v real_o touch_v in_o conscience_n that_o he_o ought_v not_o to_o pay_v his_o tithe_n though_o in_o obedience_n to_o the_o law_n of_o the_o land_n as_o well_o as_o a_o presbyterian_a that_o he_o ought_v not_o to_o receive_v the_o communion_n kneel_v for_o i_o see_v many_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n suffer_v for_o deny_v the_o right_n of_o a_o prince_n excommunicate_a by_o the_o pope_n though_o it_o be_v matter_n of_o civil_a law_n therefore_o if_o he_o that_o grasp_v too_o much_o be_v in_o the_o way_n to_o gripe_v nothing_o then_o a_o exception_n that_o lie_v against_o all_o law_n will_v do_v no_o effect_n against_o a_o few_o ceremony_n of_o this_o church_n chap._n xx._n the_o declaration_n of_o v._o eliz._n enable_v recusant_n to_o take_v the_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n what_o further_a ambiguity_n that_o oath_n involve_v what_o scandal_n the_o take_n of_o it_o in_o the_o true_a sense_n minister_v that_o this_o oath_n ought_v to_o be_v enlarge_v to_o all_o pretence_n in_o religion_n that_o abridge_v allegiance_n the_o extent_n of_o secular_a power_n in_o reform_v the_o church_n the_o usurpation_n of_o temporal_a power_n by_o the_o pope_n upon_o the_o supremacy_n the_o declaration_n of_o v._o eliz._n
the_o whole_a church_n be_v more_o destructive_a to_o the_o substance_n of_o christianity_n than_o all_o that_o corruption_n which_o the_o reformation_n pretend_v to_o cure_v but_o to_o confine_v our_o sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n our_o opinion_n in_o matter_n of_o doctrine_n and_o the_o law_n which_o we_o demand_v within_o that_o which_o the_o faith_n and_o the_o law_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n may_v appear_v to_o require_v we_o be_v half_o the_o way_n onward_o to_o the_o point_n of_o reformation_n have_v the_o ground_n and_o the_o reason_n and_o therefore_o the_o measure_n and_o the_o term_n of_o it_o the_o mistake_n of_o the_o school_n and_o of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n after_o rome_n the_o fanatic_n further_o from_o the_o truth_n of_o christianity_n then_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o school_n in_o the_o nature_n of_o justification_n and_o the_o effect_n of_o infuse_a righteousness_n to_o which_o they_o ascribe_v it_o be_v no_o way_n destructive_a to_o christianity_n no_o more_o be_v the_o opinion_n of_o satisfaction_n and_o merit_n in_o the_o good_a work_n of_o christian_n so_o long_o as_o it_o be_v ground_v upon_o god_n promise_n which_o they_o that_o inflame_v that_o opinion_n to_o the_o high_a in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n must_v acknowledge_v to_o come_v into_o consideration_n whether_o they_o will_v or_o not_o as_o for_o the_o merit_n of_o grace_n by_o the_o work_n which_o a_o natural_a man_n be_v able_a to_o do_v common_o call_v meritum_fw-la congrui_fw-la as_o that_o which_o be_v fit_a for_o god_n to_o give_v though_o not_o for_o the_o worth_n of_o the_o work_n it_o be_v indeed_o a_o error_n of_o great_a danger_n but_o never_o be_v general_a in_o the_o school_n and_o now_o general_o disallow_v so_o far_o it_o be_v always_o from_o be_v enjoin_v by_o the_o church_n but_o what_o be_v this_o in_o comparison_n of_o that_o furious_a doctrine_n that_o the_o assurance_n of_o a_o man_n predestination_n be_v justify_v faith_n in_o which_o the_o opinion_n of_o absolute_a predestination_n to_o glory_n and_o of_o god_n predetermine_v a_o man_n to_o do_v all_o that_o he_o do_v be_v twist_v together_o with_o a_o enthusiasm_n that_o we_o be_v justify_v and_o make_v the_o child_n of_o god_n by_o be_v assure_v hereof_o by_o his_o spirit_n not_o suppose_v any_o condition_n of_o christianity_n in_o consideration_n of_o which_o it_o be_v have_v and_o by_o the_o knowledge_n whereof_o it_o be_v assure_v we_o for_o they_o that_o believe_v that_o god_n predetermination_n be_v the_o reason_n and_o the_o ground_n of_o freedom_n in_o man_n will_n and_o of_o contingence_n in_o the_o effect_n of_o it_o suppose_v freedom_n and_o contingence_n do_v thereby_o bar_v the_o ill_a consequence_n of_o their_o own_o mistake_n but_o he_o that_o can_v think_v himself_o assure_v of_o that_o which_o the_o gospel_n promise_v not_o be_v assure_v that_o he_o perform_v the_o christianity_n which_o by_o his_o baptism_n he_o undertake_v why_o shall_v he_o hold_v himself_o tie_v why_o shall_v he_o study_v and_o endeavour_v himself_o to_o perform_v it_o nay_o hold_v his_o christianity_n and_o the_o scripture_n which_o infallibility_n the_o consequence_n of_o their_o principle_n worse_o than_o that_o of_o infallibility_n teach_v it_o by_o the_o same_o dictate_v of_o the_o spirit_n which_o assure_v his_o salvation_n upon_o those_o term_n why_o shall_v he_o not_o hold_v that_o which_o christianity_n and_o the_o scripture_n teach_v not_o with_o the_o same_o devotion_n and_o assurance_n which_o he_o accept_v the_o scripture_n and_o his_o christianity_n with_o why_o shall_v he_o not_o with_o the_o gnosticke_n and_o mahomet_n and_o the_o mannichee_n place_v his_o salvation_n in_o that_o which_o the_o spirit_n teach_v he_o beside_o and_o above_o the_o scripture_n allow_v christianity_n for_o proficient_o the_o same_o consequence_n take_v hold_v in_o some_o measure_n of_o those_o who_o believe_v the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o present_a church_n for_o make_v the_o sentence_n thereof_o the_o only_a reason_n of_o believe_v they_o tie_v themselves_o to_o accept_v whatsoever_o it_o shall_v decree_v for_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o therefore_o concern_v their_o salvation_n as_o much_o as_o it_o concern_v their_o salvation_n to_o believe_v the_o holy_a trinity_n indeed_o there_o be_v not_o so_o much_o danger_n for_o they_o for_o the_o person_n on_o who_o they_o repose_v themselves_o for_o the_o church_n be_v person_n of_o that_o interest_n in_o the_o world_n which_o can_v stand_v with_o the_o open_a corrupt_v of_o christianity_n the_o fear_n be_v that_o they_o may_v authorise_v those_o corruption_n which_o the_o come_n of_o the_o world_n into_o the_o church_n shall_v make_v popular_a not_o that_o they_o shall_v think_v it_o for_o their_o interest_n to_o change_v that_o which_o it_o be_v not_o popular_a to_o change_v in_o the_o mean_a time_n have_v show_v the_o point_n of_o reformation_n both_o the_o point_n of_o truth_n in_o the_o middle_n between_o both_o by_o show_v the_o point_n of_o truth_n whereby_o all_o that_o the_o reformation_n dispute_v with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v clear_v namely_o that_o that_o faith_n which_o move_v to_o undertake_v baptism_n be_v the_o faith_n which_o alone_o justifi_v i_o have_v show_v withal_o that_o the_o express_a profession_n hereof_o be_v that_o which_o must_v clear_v we_o from_o all_o impu●ation_n of_o the_o schism_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o of_o compliance_n with_o any_o fanatic_n that_o have_v teach_v the_o opposite_a heresy_n be_v by_o such_o profession_n exclude_v from_o all_o liberty_n of_o teach_v it_o for_o the_o future_a they_o who_o take_v justify_v faith_n to_o be_v confidence_n in_o god_n through_o our_o lord_n christ_n do_v commit_v the_o mistake_n which_o i_o have_v show_v and_o if_o they_o go_v far_o to_o think_v that_o by_o be_v assure_v of_o god_n grace_n they_o can_v never_o die_v cut_v of_o that_o estate_n they_o may_v indeed_o think_v themselves_o tie_v to_o return_v to_o god_n by_o repentance_n but_o may_v they_o not_o easy_o be_v delude_v to_o neglect_v it_o think_v themselves_o certain_a before_o hand_n that_o they_o shall_v do_v it_o which_o if_o it_o be_v consider_v the_o danger_n of_o the_o mistake_n will_v appear_v no_o less_o then_o that_o which_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n threaten_v as_o for_o the_o question_n between_o man_n free_a will_n and_o god_n praedestination_n grace_n how_o salvation_n be_v concern_v in_o the_o matter_n of_o free_a will_n and_o grace_n and_o grace_n take_v it_o by_o itself_o as_o not_o complicate_v and_o twist_v with_o the_o other_o concern_v justify_v faith_n the_o difficulty_n of_o it_o be_v so_o great_a as_o it_o be_v the_o true_a resolution_n of_o it_o which_o be_v the_o reconcilement_n of_o grace_n with_o free_a will_n can_v by_o no_o mean_n seem_v to_o concern_v the_o substance_n of_o faith_n necessary_a to_o be_v hold_v for_o the_o salvation_n of_o all_o christian_n but_o the_o deny_v either_o of_o man_n free_a will_n or_o god_n free_a grace_n may_v and_o certain_o do_v concern_v it_o and_o therefore_o the_o second_o council_n of_o orange_n have_v determine_v as_o well_o that_o no_o man_n be_v appoint_v by_o god_n to_o death_n and_o therefore_o to_o sin_v as_o that_o whosoever_o persevere_fw-la until_o death_n be_v appoint_v by_o god_n unto_o effectual_a grace_n there_o appear_v no_o necessity_n why_o the_o church_n shall_v run_v any_o hazard_n of_o division_n by_o decree_a farther_z in_o the_o point_n which_o we_o see_v come_v to_o pass_v in_o the_o unite_a province_n have_v that_o decree_n receive_v of_o old_a by_o the_o western_a church_n to_o settle_v the_o bound_n of_o necessary_a truth_n nor_o be_v there_o any_o other_o mean_n of_o settle_v the_o necessity_n of_o baptism_n term_n salvation_n concern_v in_o the_o sacrament●_n ●pon_o the_o same_o term_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n but_o the_o profession_n of_o this_o truth_n for_o the_o sense_n of_o our_o creed_n in_o the_o article_n of_o one_o baptism_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o s●ns_n the_o neglect_n whereof_o have_v occasion_v not_o only_o the_o sect_n of_o our_o anabaptist_n q●akers_n and_o other_o enthusiast_n and_o fanatic_n but_o have_v give_v s●cinus_n ground_n enough_o to_o count_v baptism_n indifferent_a and_o some_o of_o our_o fanatic_n to_o think_v it_o a_o mere_a mistake_n that_o any_o man_n be_v ever_o baptize_v with_o water_n to_o make_v he_o a_o christian_a since_o the_o cease_n of_o moses_n law_n and_o john_n baptism_n as_o for_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n that_o which_o concern_v salvation_n in_o it_o be_v manifest_a admit_v the_o premise_n namely_o that_o they_o who_o make_v good_a or_o revive_v the_o covenant_n of_o their_o baptism_n in_o receive_v it_o shall_v receive_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o by_o consequence_n his_o spirit_n hypostatical_o unite_v to_o the_o
against_o the_o conflict_n of_o death_n with_o the_o spiritual_a enemy_n of_o the_o soul_n for_o though_o the_o church_n ordain_v prayer_n for_o bodily_a health_n can_v by_o no_o mean_n forget_v the_o health_n of_o the_o soul_n if_o it_o mean_v to_o remember_v the_o common_a christianity_n yet_o appear_v it_o nevertheless_o what_o ground_n and_o occasion_n the_o institution_n of_o s._n james_n pretend_v and_o so_o it_o appear_v what_o dependence_n the_o unction_n of_o the_o sick_a hold_v upon_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o eucharist_n as_o for_o the_o marriage_n of_o christian_n if_o it_o be_v under_o a_o peculiar_a rule_n by_o virtue_n of_o the_o common_a christianity_n and_o that_o the_o interest_n of_o the_o church_n in_o allow_v of_o marriage_n be_v ground_v upon_o the_o same_o it_o be_v far_o from_o any_o imputation_n of_o abuse_n that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n celebrate_v the_o same_o at_o the_o eucharist_n for_o see_v our_o christianity_n be_v particular_o concern_v in_o the_o duty_n of_o marriage_n how_o shall_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n enable_v to_o discharge_v the_o say_a duty_n be_v expect_v but_o by_o revive_v the_o obligation_n of_o our_o common_a christianity_n which_o the_o receive_n of_o the_o eucharist_n signify_v i_o will_v not_o undertake_v to_o clear_v the_o see_v of_o rome_n from_o all_o abuse_n of_o ecclesiastical_a power_n in_o multiply_v the_o impediment_n of_o marriage_n as_o beyond_o necessity_n so_o beyond_o the_o interest_n of_o christianity_n and_o in_o dispense_n in_o they_o again_o for_o favour_n or_o for_o reward_n as_o have_v be_v prohibit_v for_o no_o better_a reason_n than_o this_o that_o power_n appear_v most_o in_o that_o which_o there_o be_v least_o reason_n for_o on_o the_o other_o side_n dispense_n in_o those_o degree_n which_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n prohibit_v and_o therefore_o christianity_n ought_v to_o be_v far_o from_o allow_v it_o seem_v to_o stretch_v the_o power_n of_o the_o church_n beyond_o the_o bound_n of_o it_o and_o thus_o it_o appear_v first_o what_o relation_n these_o office_n hold_v with_o the_o eucharist_n and_o the_o communion_n of_o it_o and_o then_o what_o be_v the_o point_n of_o reformation_n in_o which_o the_o void_a of_o those_o abuse_n stand_v on_o the_o other_o side_n they_o that_o now_o be_v content_a with_o confirmation_n side_n the_o reformation_n pretend_v no_o l●ss_o abuse_v on_o the_o other_o side_n so_o they_o may_v have_v the_o give_v of_o it_o themselves_o and_o the_o catechise_v of_o they_o that_o receive_v it_o after_o their_o mode_n not_o distinguish_v themselves_o from_o the_o fanatic_n can_v be_v presume_v to_o catechise_v according_a to_o the_o christianity_n of_o god_n church_n but_o in_o as_o much_o as_o they_o usurp_v unto_o themselves_o authority_n without_o their_o bishop_n and_o against_o they_o they_o can_v make_v member_n of_o god_n church_n by_o the_o confirmation_n which_o so_o they_o may_v give_v so_o they_o bar_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n spirit_n which_o baptism_n promise_v a_o christian_a as_o a_o christian_a by_o bar_v the_o unity_n of_o god_n church_n again_o ordain_v all_o who_o they_o ordain_v to_o one_o and_o the●_n same_o office_n of_o preach_v the_o word_n and_o minister_a the_o sacrament_n first_o they_o usurp_v the_o power_n of_o ordain_v which_o they_o never_o receive_v any_o authority_n by_o their_o ordination_n to_o exercise_v and_o that_o in_o despite_n of_o their_o bishop_n as_o seduce_v the_o people_n from_o the_o way_n of_o salvation_n which_o by_o their_o ordination_n they_o pretend_v to_o teach_v so_o receive_v no_o power_n of_o the_o key_n by_o their_o usurpation_n they_o receive_v no_o power_n to_o celebrate_v the_o eucharist_n but_o only_o to_o commit_v sacrilege_n by_o profane_v so_o high_a a_o ordinance_n and_o then_o they_o tread_v under_o foot_n the_o hierarchy_n of_o bishop_n priest_n and_o deacon_n in_o despite_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n divide_v the_o authority_n of_o their_o bishop_n among_o themselves_o but_o abolish_n the_o order_n of_o deacon_n by_o confound_v the_o title_n of_o minister_n common_a to_o all_o three_o order_n for_o minister_a their_o several_a office_n with_o that_o sense_n in_o which_o the_o low_a order_n be_v call_v deacon_n for_o minister_a to_o bishop_n and_o priest_n in_o their_o office_n as_o for_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n which_o be_v not_o that_o which_o god_n leave_v his_o church_n unless_o the_o effect_n of_o it_o be_v the_o bind_n and_o lose_v of_o sin_n it_o be_v plain_a enough_o that_o under_o pretence_n of_o take_v away_o the_o scandal_n of_o notorious_a sin_n they_o will_v have_v power_n to_o shame_n and_o domineer_v over_o their_o neighbour_n overtake_v with_o sin_n but_o without_o pretence_n of_o cure_v their_o sin_n for_o the_o condition_n upon_o which_o they_o be_v restore_v such_o discipline_n go_v no_o further_a than_o the_o outward_a man_n and_o the_o restrain_v of_o he_o from_o sin_n for_o shame_n of_o the_o world_n the_o presumption_n of_o a_o voluntary_a change_n in_o the_o inward_a man_n for_o hope_n of_o god_n grace_n by_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n must_v be_v the_o effect_n of_o the_o key_n of_o god_n church_n as_o for_o this_o power_n in_o sin_n that_o be_v not_o notorious_a what_o do_v they_o pretend_v more_o than_o their_o preach_v which_o whether_o it_o be_v such_o as_o show_v the_o cure_n of_o sin_n let_v their_o diligence_n in_o preach_a mortification_n witness_n and_o yet_o whether_o every_o christian_a can_v learn_v or_o will_v be_v induce_v mere_o by_o preach_v to_o use_v that_o mortification_n which_o be_v requisite_a let_v they_o that_o be_v able_a judge_n but_o what_o visit_v of_o the_o sick_a do_v they_o pretend_v but_o to_o pray_v by_o they_o or_o comfort_v they_o without_o ever_o enter_v into_o the_o ground_n of_o their_o comfort_n upon_o examination_n of_o the_o conscience_n the_o blessing_n of_o marriage_n they_o have_v reserve_v to_o the_o church_n but_o upon_o a_o ungrounded_a presumption_n that_o the_o marriage_n of_o christian_n be_v to_o be_v rule_v by_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n the_o insufficience_n whereof_o be_v discern_v by_o the_o people_n when_o they_o be_v loose_a from_o the_o law_n of_o the_o land_n have_v occasion_v all_o the_o incest_n and_o other_o disorder_n of_o the_o late_a time_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n whereas_o all_o these_o office_n be_v either_o provide_v to_o bring_v christian_n to_o the_o eucharist_n or_o to_o be_v celebrate_v with_o the_o eucharist_n it_o be_v demand_v that_o godly_a minister_n be_v not_o tie_v to_o celebrate_v the_o eucharist_n above_o thrice_o a_o year_n it_o shall_v rather_o be_v demand_v how_o they_o come_v to_o be_v count_v godly_a minister_n that_o demand_v this_o i_o shall_v not_o need_v to_o say_v how_o the_o point_n of_o reformation_n be_v both_o the_o point_n of_o reformation_n in_o the_o mean_a between_o both_o find_v through_o which_o the_o line_n of_o it_o be_v to_o pass_v in_o these_o particular_n confirmation_n fit_v for_o the_o eucharist_n by_o the_o profession_n of_o christianity_n and_o by_o be_v a_o member_n of_o god_n church_n ordination_n give_v some_o degree_n in_o the_o clergy_n above_o the_o people_n and_o therefore_o suppose_v the_o profession_n of_o retire_v from_o the_o world_n more_o than_o other_o christian_n undertake_v to_o do_v the_o eucharist_n convey_v god_n spirit_n for_o the_o perform_n of_o this_o profession_n sincere_o and_o resolute_o make_v both_o require_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n both_o be_v to_o be_v minister_v by_o that_o authority_n without_o which_o nothing_o be_v to_o be_v do_v in_o each_o church_n the_o reconcile_n of_o notorious_a sin_n be_v the_o bishop_n peculiar_a the_o priest_n have_v authority_n to_o cure_v that_o which_o be_v make_v know_v to_o he_o but_o this_o authority_n be_v not_o arbitrary_a in_o either_o of_o both_o the_o rigour_n of_o ancient_a discipline_n by_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o church_n be_v quite_o out_o of_o force_n but_o in_o these_o lees_n and_o dregs_o of_o christianity_n which_o now_o we_o draw_v there_o be_v some_o reasonable_a ground_n to_o presume_v upon_o that_o a_o sinner_n be_v resolve_v to_o live_v a_o good_a christian_n for_o the_o future_a let_v that_o be_v limit_v and_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n will_v have_v effect_n in_o bar_v the_o sinner_n from_o the_o communion_n till_o the_o presumption_n be_v visible_a in_o he_o but_o to_o what_o shall_v the_o key_n of_o the_o church_n reconcile_v he_o when_o the_o eucharist_n be_v celebrate_v but_o thrice_o a_o year_n to_o what_o purpose_n be_v the_o visit_n of_o the_o sick_a but_o that_o upon_o such_o presumption_n they_o may_v have_v the_o eucharist_n to_o maintain_v they_o in_o the_o great_a journey_n which_o they_o be_v go_v the_o duty_n of_o marriage_n among_o christian_n depend_v whole_o upon_o this_o supposition_n that_o god_n give_v the_o marry_v a_o
the_o synagogue_n derive_v from_o the_o term_n of_o this_o precept_n but_o according_a to_o the_o correspondence_n between_o christianity_n and_o judaisme_n god_n be_v our_o father_n and_o our_o mother_n be_v the_o church_n and_o therefore_o as_o in_o temporal_a and_o civil_a thing_n he_o be_v a_o rebel_n that_o honour_v not_o the_o king_n so_o in_o matter_n of_o religion_n he_o be_v a_o apostate_n from_o the_o church_n that_o honour_v not_o the_o command_n of_o it_o within_o those_o bound_n which_o the_o command_n of_o god_n limit_v and_o thus_o the_o sieve_n first_o commandment_n according_a to_o the_o method_n of_o christianity_n abridge_n a_o infinite_a number_n of_o jewish_a observation_n into_o one_o very_o weighty_a precept_n enjoin_v every_o one_o of_o they_o the_o whole_a duty_n of_o a_o christian_a to_o god_n the_o acknowledge_v and_o worship_v of_o the_o only_a true_a god_n extend_v itself_o to_o live_v as_o a_o christian_a to_o rest_v from_o the_o work_n of_o the_o old_a adam_n and_o to_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n by_o keep_v his_o commandment_n as_o they_o be_v deliver_v to_o we_o by_o his_o church_n the_o four_o precept_n that_o follow_v be_v under_o one_o and_o the_o same_o consideration_n christianity_n the_o meaning_n of_o the_o five_o last_o according_a to_o christianity_n in_o this_o place_n murder_n adultery_n theft_n and_o false_a witness_n be_v thing_n that_o either_o take_v away_o or_o abridge_v the_o interest_n of_o particular_a jew_n in_o the_o land_n of_o promise_n and_o if_o the_o public_a be_v accessary_a to_o the_o multiply_a of_o they_o according_o the_o public_a interest_n thereof_o in_o god_n promise_n must_v needs_o become_v questionable_a among_o christian_n see_v these_o be_v crime_n which_o can_v consist_v with_o any_o interest_n in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v the_o very_a first_o motion_n of_o they_o be_v command_v to_o be_v suppress_v and_o mortify_v and_o certain_o whosoever_o be_v inward_o a_o jew_n in_o spirit_n do_v understand_v himself_o bind_v to_o abstain_v from_o they_o not_o for_o fear_v of_o punishment_n but_o for_o love_n of_o goodness_n which_o love_n the_o love_n which_o christ_n have_v prevent_v we_o with_o advance_v to_o that_o height_n which_o christianity_n profess_v but_o this_o oblige_v we_o to_o assign_v the_o last_o commandment_n a_o meaning_n by_o itself_o distinct_a from_o all_o that_o which_o be_v prohibit_v by_o the_o former_a precept_n and_o true_o he_o that_o find_v not_o the_o peculiar_a law_n of_o the_o jew_n in_o the_o prohibition_n of_o covet_v another_o man_n wife_n must_v be_v strange_o transport_v with_o prejudice_n for_o adultery_n be_v prohibit_v afore_o covet_v another_o man_n wife_n can_v be_v understand_v but_o by_o sow_v seed_n of_o dissension_n and_o other_o way_n of_o entice_a whereby_o a_o man_n may_v seek_v to_o make_v another_o man_n wife_n his_o own_o by_o the_o law_n of_o the_o jew_n which_o allow_v a_o man_n to_o put_v away_o a_o wife_n that_o please_v he_o not_o and_o therefore_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o precept_n must_v be_v weigh_v in_o the_o same_o balance_n to_o forbid_v any_o way_n of_o fraud_n or_o force_n whereby_o a_o man_n may_v make_v his_o neighbour_n good_n his_v own_o therefore_o the_o matter_n of_o this_o precept_n be_v express_v by_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d mark_v x._o 13._o and_o the_o jew_n reduce_v the_o precept_n of_o not_o covet_v or_o lust_a under_o the_o title_n of_o rapine_n and_o oppression_n as_o you_o may_v see_v in_o maimoni_n and_o therefore_o whether_o you_o restrain_v st._n paul_n thou_o shall_v not_o covet_v rom._n vii_o 7._o to_o that_o which_o this_o precept_n forbid_v or_o enlarge_v it_o to_o that_o which_o be_v forbid_v by_o the_o other_o four_o christian_n be_v by_o this_o precept_n forbid_v to_o entertain_v any_o motion_n of_o lust_n towards_o that_o which_o be_v another_o man_n and_o st._n austin_n observation_n that_o the_o sum_n of_o the_o law_n be_v comprise_v in_o the_o first_o precept_n command_v the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o the_o last_o forbid_v concupiscence_n be_v full_o verify_v understand_v the_o love_n of_o god_n to_o be_v command_v by_o all_o the_o five_o precept_n comprise_v all_o of_o they_o the_o whole_a duty_n of_o a_o christian_a to_o god_n but_o the_o love_n of_o a_o man_n neighbour_n by_o the_o other_o five_o forbid_v any_o lust_n towards_o a_o man_n own_o advantage_n by_o another_o man_n disadvantage_n and_o so_o you_o see_v what_o a_o christian_a pray_v for_o in_o pray_v to_o god_n to_o have_v mercy_n upon_o he_o for_o any_o thing_n wherein_o he_o have_v offend_v against_o any_o precept_n of_o his_o law_n for_o the_o past_a and_o to_o give_v he_o grace_n to_o keep_v it_o for_o the_o future_a in_o particular_a for_o the_o four_o commandment_n that_o if_o he_o will_v pray_v as_o a_o christian_a shall_v pray_v he_o must_v pray_v to_o god_n to_o have_v mercy_n upon_o he_o in_o whatsoever_o he_o have_v not_o rest_v from_o the_o work_n of_o the_o first_o adam_n beg_v grace_n to_o do_v it_o for_o the_o future_a chap._n xxiv_o that_o no_o clergy_n man_n ought_v to_o be_v of_o more_o diocese_n then_o one_o of_o inferior_a order_n in_o the_o clergy_n and_o their_o office_n the_o conversation_n of_o the_o clergy_n and_o the_o use_n of_o church_n good_n the_o ground_n for_o promotion_n to_o high_a degree_n the_o university_n may_v be_v serviceable_a to_o some_o part_n of_o this_o discipline_n reason_n for_o it_o public_a fame_n of_o sin_n to_o be_v purge_v by_o ecclesiastical_a process_n sinner_n convict_v by_o law_n not_o to_o communicate_v before_o penance_n the_o cure_n of_o notorious_a sin_n the_o bishop_n office_n the_o church_n not_o reform_v without_o restore_a penance_n public_a or_o private_a what_o mean_v there_o be_v leave_v for_o the_o restore_n of_o it_o i_o have_v yet_o two_o particular_n to_o mention_v both_o much_o to_o be_v desire_v one_o that_o no_o clergy_n man_n ought_v to_o be_v of_o more_o diocese_n then_o one_o for_o the_o justify_n of_o that_o reformation_n which_o we_o profess_v the_o one_o be_v a_o express_v canon_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n concern_v the_o discipline_n of_o the_o clergy_n the_o other_o be_v a_o evident_a consequence_n of_o the_o like_a canon_n in_o this_o estate_n when_o religion_n be_v settle_v by_o the_o law_n of_o the_o kingdom_n concern_v the_o discipline_n of_o the_o people_n the_o former_a be_v the_o restore_a of_o that_o canon_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n which_o confine_v all_o order_n of_o the_o clergy_n to_o their_o respective_a church_n in_o the_o language_n of_o this_o time_n it_o signify_v the_o void_a of_o all_o privilege_n to_o hold_v church_n preferment_n in_o more_o diocese_n then_o one_o it_o be_v the_o evident_a consequence_n of_o that_o order_n which_o the_o whole_a church_n have_v derive_v from_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o constitute_v several_a city_n and_o the_o territory_n thereof_o the_o seat_n of_o several_a church_n and_o their_o diocese_n it_o be_v manifest_a that_o this_o order_n be_v in_o force_n though_o in_o a_o diverse_a measure_n in_o divers_a country_n from_o the_o beginning_n all_o over_o christendom_n and_o that_o with_o the_o like_a respect_n to_o the_o church_n of_o mother_n city_n in_o all_o province_n it_o be_v also_o manifest_a that_o the_o canon_n ground_v upon_o this_o order_n be_v in_o force_n till_o the_o usurpation_n of_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n seek_v benefice_n for_o their_o creature_n all_o over_o christendom_n authorize_v the_o dissolve_v of_o it_o by_o privilege_n the_o great_a benefit_n whereof_o themselves_o enjoy_v so_o that_o the_o surcease_n of_o it_o be_v a_o abuse_n of_o the_o papacy_n our_o profess_v of_o reformation_n require_v the_o restore_n of_o it_o but_o the_o restore_n of_o it_o will_v signify_v more_o than_o the_o term_n of_o office_n of_o inferior_a order_n in_o the_o clergy_n and_o their_o office_n it_o express_v it_o will_v infer_v the_o restore_n of_o some_o part_n of_o that_o ancient_a discipline_n of_o the_o clergy_n upon_o which_o the_o credit_n and_o authority_n thereof_o with_o and_o over_o the_o people_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o christianity_n be_v ground_v it_o be_v well_o enough_o know_v how_o very_o ancient_o how_o very_o general_o inferior_a order_n of_o clergy_n be_v institute_v by_o the_o church_n under_o the_o hierarchy_n found_v by_o the_o apostle_n for_o a_o sense_n to_o st._n paul_n rule_n that_o no_o novice_n shall_v be_v ordain_v for_o when_o christianity_n be_v propagate_v all_o over_o then_o those_o that_o have_v live_v mere_a layman_n all_o their_o life_n may_v as_o well_o be_v count_v novice_n in_o christianity_n compare_v with_o they_o that_o be_v grow_v up_o from_o their_o youth_n in_o these_o inferior_a order_n as_o those_o that_o be_v new_o convert_v to_o christianity_n in_o st._n paul_n time_n the_o employment_n
weight_n and_o consequence_n the_o want_n of_o charity_n will_v lie_v on_o that_o side_n which_o shall_v refuse_v that_o reason_n which_o have_v it_o condescend_v to_o those_o mistake_n may_v have_v be_v redress_v how_o much_o more_o when_o there_o be_v no_o other_o choice_n leave_v but_o either_o to_o continue_v at_o the_o distance_n under_o which_o we_o be_v bear_v or_o to_o give_v ourselves_o up_o to_o the_o will_n of_o those_o who_o not_o have_v give_v satisfaction_n in_o the_o trust_n which_o they_o undertake_v condescend_v to_o no_o term_n of_o better_a assurance_n for_o the_o future_a and_o true_o though_o the_o sin_n of_o schism_n hinder_v salvation_n more_o schism_n what_o schism_n destroy_v the_o salvation_n of_o what_o person_n by_o instance_n of_o the_o most_o notable_a schism_n than_o any_o other_o sin_n because_o it_o involve_v the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n and_o so_o hinder_v the_o salvation_n of_o more_o yet_o be_v there_o no_o cause_n to_o think_v that_o all_o who_o be_v involve_v in_o the_o state_n of_o schism_n be_v involve_v in_o the_o sin_n of_o it_o the_o less_o cause_n there_o be_v for_o it_o the_o great_a breach_n of_o charity_n by_o it_o therefore_o the_o great_a the_o more_o visible_a the_o cause_n be_v of_o that_o change_n which_o occasion_n it_o the_o less_o be_v to_o be_v impute_v to_o they_o that_o follow_v such_o cause_n especial_o to_o private_a christian_n when_o such_o cause_n be_v as_o visible_a on_o the_o one_o side_n as_o the_o interest_n of_o each_o man_n salvation_n be_v visible_a to_o the_o contrary_a on_o the_o other_o side_n beside_o i_o say_v afore_o that_o schism_n in_o the_o church_n be_v the_o same_o which_o civil_a war_n in_o the_o state_n of_o the_o world_n now_o though_o war_n can_v be_v just_a on_o both_o side_n for_o the_o head_n and_o cause_n of_o it_o yet_o for_o those_o that_o follow_v their_o head_n in_o cause_n too_o difficult_a for_o private_a person_n to_o judge_v it_o will_v be_v no_o guilt_n of_o blood_n to_o follow_v that_o authority_n which_o appear_v to_o they_o visible_a which_o if_o it_o be_v true_a as_o it_o be_v evident_o reasonable_a there_o will_v no_o question_n remain_v that_o there_o may_v be_v salvation_n on_o both_o side_n of_o a_o schism_n the_o schism_n of_o the_o novatian_o montanist_n donatist_n meletian_o and_o perhaps_o divers_a other_o be_v ground_v upon_o such_o cause_n as_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n do_v no_o less_o visible_o outweigh_v than_o the_o consent_n thereof_o to_o the_o contrary_n be_v visible_a notwithstanding_o so_o long_o as_o the_o faith_n remain_v entire_a as_o it_o do_v not_o appear_v that_o they_o disbelieved_a from_o their_o beginning_n any_o thing_n necessary_a for_o the_o salvation_n of_o all_o to_o be_v believe_v and_o the_o office_n of_o god_n service_n be_v minister_v by_o they_o according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o the_o church_n as_o not_o differ_v about_o any_o of_o they_o i_o shall_v be_v as_o loath_a to_o condemn_v all_o the_o partisan_n as_o to_o excuse_v the_o cause_n of_o they_o to_z or_o from_o eternal_a death_n how_o much_o more_o in_o the_o schism_n of_o the_o luciferian_o of_o that_o at_o antiochia_n between_o meletius_n and_o paulinus_n of_o that_o between_o rome_n and_o constantinople_n in_o the_o cause_n of_o acacius_n and_z perhaps_o in_o other_o in_o which_o there_o be_v only_a breach_n of_o communion_n upon_o some_o discontent_n in_o the_o govern_n of_o matter_n in_o the_o church_n without_o either_o difference_n of_o faith_n or_o in_o the_o office_n of_o god_n service_n i_o confess_v pope_n gelasius_n de_fw-fr vinculo_fw-la an●thematis_fw-la in_o the_o cause_n of_o acacius_n take_v it_o for_o grant_v all_o along_o that_o the_o want_n of_o communion_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n render_v all_o liable_a to_o that_o curse_n which_o christian_n by_o fail_v of_o the_o duty_n of_o christian_n either_o as_o christian_n or_o as_o member_n of_o the_o church_n do_v incur_v upon_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o church_n but_o he_o who_o admit_v that_o constitution_n of_o the_o church_n which_o i_o maintain_v will_v not_o easy_o admit_v the_o sentence_n of_o a_o part_n suppose_v all_o the_o west_n engage_v in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n able_a to_o damn_v all_o the_o christian_n of_o the_o east_n that_o adhere_v only_o to_o the_o successor_n of_o acacius_n not_o be_v able_a to_o redress_v his_o miscarriage_n which_o his_o successor_n themselves_o own_v not_o rather_o be_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o answer_n god_n for_o the_o soul_n that_o miscarry_v by_o maintain_v the_o breach_n open_a beyond_o that_o which_o the_o good_a of_o christendom_n require_v nay_o i_o can_v condemn_v the_o opinion_n of_o those_o who_o allow_v a_o possibility_n of_o salvation_n in_o the_o sect_n of_o the_o nestorian_n in_o the_o east_n and_o the_o jacobite_n in_o the_o south_n notwithstanding_o that_o they_o stand_v divide_v from_o the_o church_n upon_o occasion_n of_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n and_o chalcedon_n which_o it_o embrace_v for_o it_o be_v possible_a that_o they_o may_v understand_v the_o term_n of_o their_o distance_n in_o such_o a_o sense_n as_o may_v very_o well_o stand_v with_o the_o decree_n of_o those_o council_n so_o that_o the_o difference_n be_v occasion_v by_o personal_a discontent_n though_o it_o be_v mortal_a to_o those_o who_o bring_v it_o to_o pass_v yet_o may_v it_o not_o be_v so_o to_o those_o that_o know_v not_o how_o to_o help_v it_o if_o it_o occasion_n not_o the_o want_n of_o mean_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n otherwise_o but_o this_o be_v not_o to_o say_v that_o these_o party_n be_v not_o bind_v to_o concur_v to_o the_o visible_a unity_n of_o god_n church_n by_o communion_n in_o the_o office_n of_o his_o service_n shall_v they_o profess_v themselves_o free_a from_o a_o obligation_n concern_v all_o christian_n as_o member_n of_o the_o church_n i_o will_v not_o excuse_v those_o that_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o continue_v such_o breach_n because_o they_o know_v not_o that_o which_o they_o shall_v know_v but_o those_o that_o be_v only_a sufferer_n in_o such_o breach_n i_o shall_v not_o exclude_v from_o the_o hope_n of_o salvation_n upon_o that_o account_n not_o want_v otherwise_o that_o which_o be_v necessary_a to_o the_o salvation_n of_o all_o christian_n which_o the_o division_n of_o the_o church_n must_v needs_o render_v very_o difficult_a for_o the_o great_a part_n to_o obtain_v this_o i_o will_v say_v much_o more_o of_o the_o schism_n between_o the_o greek_a and_o latin_a church_n be_v well_o assure_v that_o there_o be_v no_o such_o defect_n in_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n as_o may_v warrant_v the_o latin_a church_n to_o sentence_v they_o for_o heretic_n and_o as_o for_o schism_n that_o the_o latin_a church_n by_o undertake_v more_o than_o one_o part_n of_o the_o church_n can_v undertake_v without_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o other_o in_o matter_n of_o common_a concernment_n have_v the_o great_a hand_n in_o it_o whatsoever_o the_o truth_n be_v of_o the_o dispute_v that_o occasion_n it_o and_o therefore_o it_o be_v much_o to_o be_v lament_v that_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n shall_v pursue_v no_o other_o term_n of_o reunite_a those_o distress_a and_o persecute_v church_n unto_o itself_o but_o those_o of_o absolute_a submission_n to_o the_o dictate_v thereof_o without_o why_o or_o wherefore_o not_o be_v afraid_a to_o raise_v they_o persecution_n by_o unbeliever_n that_o they_o may_v be_v necessitate_v to_o that_o submission_n which_o will_v increase_v their_o persecution_n from_o their_o sovereign_n see_v then_o that_o we_o have_v so_o many_o instance_n of_o schism_n which_o exclude_v not_o the_o hope_n of_o salvation_n especial_o for_o those_o that_o be_v sufferer_n in_o they_o that_o be_v for_o private_a christian_n how_o far_o ought_v we_o to_o be_v from_o yield_v to_o the_o unreasonable_a demand_n of_o the_o missionary_n charge_v the_o schism_n upon_o the_o reformation_n whereof_o the_o abuse_n which_o they_o maintain_v be_v the_o only_a true_a cause_n for_o though_o it_o be_v always_o and_o still_o be_v a_o very_a difficult_a thing_n to_o see_v the_o true_a point_n of_o resormation_n so_o as_o to_o bring_v those_o that_o feel_v the_o abuse_n to_o consent_v in_o it_o yet_o the_o abuse_n be_v both_o visible_a and_o palpable_a the_o fault_n commit_v by_o the_o mistake_n of_o it_o will_v be_v imputable_a to_o those_o that_o will_v condescend_v to_o no_o reason_n as_o well_o as_o to_o those_o who_o proceed_v to_o a_o change_n without_o due_a information_n in_o the_o ground_n and_o measure_n of_o it_o and_o therefore_o up●n_o that_o account_n there_o can_v be_v no_o bar_n to_o the_o salvation_n of_o private_a christian_n that_o be_v no_o actor_n but_o sufferer_n in_o such_o breach_n though_o the_o misunderstanding_n of_o the_o due_a ground_n and_o measure_n
if_o he_o refuse_v it_o the_o curate_n indeed_o stand_v excuse_v by_o the_o law_n as_o to_o his_o superior_n and_o to_o the_o church_n but_o what_o will_v the_o law_n what_o will_v the_o church_n what_o will_v the_o curate_n say_v for_o themselves_o at_o the_o great_a judgement_n of_o god_n if_o it_o appear_v that_o a_o soul_n perish_v by_o this_o defect_n in_o the_o law_n according_a to_o the_o which_o he_o minister_v his_o office_n and_o a_o recusant_n in_o this_o case_n may_v say_v with_o truth_n that_o those_o abuse_n which_o i_o have_v tax_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n for_o allow_v it_o command_v not_o that_o he_o may_v possible_o meet_v with_o one_o that_o be_v not_o taint_v with_o those_o novelty_n of_o doctrine_n but_o will_v deal_v faithful_o with_o his_o soul_n in_o that_o exigent_n and_o therefore_o may_v hope_v that_o he_o sin_v not_o in_o continue_v a_o recusant_n out_o of_o hope_n for_o that_o help_n in_o this_o point_n which_o he_o can_v expect_v by_o conform_v and_o therefore_o that_o his_o sin_n not_o be_v visible_a to_o he_o in_o this_o point_n the_o penalty_n of_o recusancy_n at_o least_o in_o this_o regard_n be_v inflict_v without_o cause_n difference_n a_o supplication_n for_o a_o full_a debate_n of_o all_o matter_n in_o difference_n have_v i_o not_o proceed_v thus_o far_o in_o set_v forth_o what_o the_o justify_n of_o the_o reformation_n which_o we_o profess_v will_v require_v i_o have_v not_o set_v forth_o the_o ground_n of_o that_o most_o humble_a supplication_n which_o i_o advance_v upon_o it_o together_o with_o a_o most_o earnest_a adjuration_n if_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o inferior_n in_o any_o case_n possible_a to_o adjure_v their_o superior_n to_o and_o of_o all_o estate_n who_o the_o form_n of_o the_o law_n of_o religion_n in_o this_o kingdom_n may_v any_o way_n concern_v by_o the_o bowel_n of_o god_n mercy_n in_o christ_n by_o the_o bitter_a passion_n of_o his_o cross_n by_o the_o merit_n of_o his_o suffering_n by_o that_o ●hope_fw-mi of_o salvation_n which_o they_o furnish_v all_o christian_n with_o and_o if_o the_o good_a of_o this_o world_n be_v of_o any_o consideration_n after_o so_o high_a concernment_n by_o the_o hope_n of_o his_o majesty_n long_a and_o prosperous_a reign_n over_o we_o by_o the_o blessing_n of_o his_o return_n by_o the_o peace_n which_o we_o enjoy_v through_o the_o same_o not_o to_o think_v the_o restore_n of_o religion_n by_o the_o law_n of_o this_o kingdom_n the_o work_n of_o one_o sit_v of_o parliament_n or_o synod_n not_o to_o think_v that_o a_o work_n of_o that_o consequence_n and_o difficulty_n can_v be_v conclude_v and_o make_v up_o by_o any_o law_n that_o may_v present_o be_v provide_v by_o any_o humane_a wisdom_n not_o to_o think_v the_o law_n present_o provide_v so_o fix_v for_o eternity_n that_o further_a endeavour_n for_o the_o perfect_a of_o so_o great_a a_o work_n shall_v be_v think_v derogatory_n to_o the_o authority_n of_o law_n in_o fine_a according_a to_o that_o which_o i_o say_v in_o the_o beginning_n to_o think_v the_o law_n that_o may_v present_o be_v provide_v ambulatory_a and_o provisional_a till_o all_o possible_a mean_n shall_v have_v be_v try_v to_o put_v so_o great_a a_o work_n beyond_o all_o imputation_n of_o any_o visible_a offence_n not_o think_v any_o pain_n a_o burden_n that_o may_v show_v reasonable_a hope_n of_o a_o good_a issue_n to_o so_o high_a a_o purpose_n for_o as_o there_o be_v just_a cause_n to_o think_v that_o there_o remain_v very_o much_o mean_n to_o be_v employ_v with_o such_o a_o hope_n so_o the_o time_n now_o seem_v proper_a now_o that_o there_o be_v appearance_n of_o the_o restore_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a law_n of_o this_o land_n for_o employ_v the_o same_o for_o the_o mean_n to_o be_v employ_v will_v consist_v in_o a_o just_a and_o full_a debate_n of_o reason_n upon_o principle_n agree_v upon_o between_o the_o party_n tend_v to_o reduce_v they_o unto_o agreement_n in_o such_o thing_n as_o remain_v in_o difference_n this_o debate_n may_v well_o seem_v dangerous_a to_o peace_n not_o suppose_v any_o authority_n to_o govern_v it_o within_o the_o due_a bound_n and_o to_o direct_v it_o unto_o the_o due_a purpose_n but_o suppose_v as_o we_o must_v needs_o suppose_v all_o party_n liable_a to_o that_o authority_n which_o the_o law_n of_o the_o land_n authorise_v because_o that_o be_v acknowledge_v by_o all_o party_n neither_o can_v the_o secular_a power_n allow_v thsoe_o who_o it_o own_v for_o governor_n of_o the_o church_n less_o then_o to_o govern_v and_o direct_v all_o dispute_n tend_v to_o satisfy_v all_o that_o question_v the_o ecclesiastical_a law_n of_o the_o kingdom_n nor_o need_v they_o desire_v more_o for_o a_o reasonable_a ground_n of_o hope_n for_o good_a success_n there_o can_v be_v no_o ground_n to_o expect_v that_o they_o who_o open_o profess_v the_o law_n of_o religion_n to_o be_v the_o sin_n of_o they_o that_o make_v they_o can_v think_v their_o duty_n discharge_v to_o god_n by_o be_v instrumental_a in_o the_o execute_n of_o they_o to_o the_o intent_n to_o they_o that_o make_v they_o they_o must_v needs_o think_v themselves_o bind_v in_o conscience_n to_o deprave_v and_o to_o pervert_v the_o effect_n of_o they_o to_o their_o own_o intent_n in_o a_o infinity_n of_o particular_n which_o no_o diligence_n of_o government_n can_v prevent_v or_o meet_v with_o but_o when_o upon_o full_a and_o just_a debate_n it_o shall_v appear_v that_o a_o change_n be_v refuse_v they_o mere_o because_o they_o can_v show_v no_o sufficient_a reason_n for_o it_o upon_o those_o ground_n which_o the_o common_a christianity_n oblige_v the_o party_n to_o acknowledge_v condescend_v to_o all_o that_o they_o can_v show_v such_o reason_n for_o how_o can_v it_o be_v imagine_v that_o any_o prejudice_n or_o engagement_n that_o may_v be_v so_o honourable_o quit_v will_v prevail_v above_o god_n and_o their_o country_n to_o a_o defiance_n of_o they_o that_o carry_v not_o the_o sword_n in_o vain_a i_o confess_v i_o can_v hope_v for_o no_o good_a end_n of_o any_o such_o dispute_n debate_n the_o ground_n of_o resolution_n the_o be_v of_o the_o catholic_n church_n the_o first_o and_o chief_a point_n of_o the_o debate_n without_o suppose_v that_o sense_n of_o the_o article_n concern_v one_o catholic_n church_n which_o have_v carry_v i_o through_o this_o discourse_n for_o the_o principle_n upon_o which_o all_o matter_n in_o debate_n be_v to_o be_v try_v nor_o can_v i_o take_v it_o for_o a_o supposition_n which_o they_o do_v admit_v of_o themselves_o but_o i_o suppose_v first_o that_o the_o misunderstanding_n of_o that_o which_o it_o demand_v be_v once_o clear_v the_o truth_n of_o it_o will_v be_v so_o evident_a by_o that_o reason_n which_o must_v satisfy_v for_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o common_a christianity_n that_o all_o shall_v be_v convince_v of_o it_o by_o that_o which_o they_o allege_v for_o themselves_o as_o be_v the_o consequence_n of_o their_o own_o allegation_n then_o i_o suppose_v further_o that_o it_o be_v the_o first_o point_n to_o be_v try_v as_o that_o which_o in_o effect_n contain_v more_o than_o half_a the_o trial_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n which_o have_v it_o be_v agree_v upon_o may_v have_v prevent_v all_o breach_n and_o without_o agree_v upon_o it_o leave_v all_o dispute_n in_o religion_n endless_a and_o without_o hope_n of_o conviction_n or_o satisfaction_n on_o this_o side_n or_o on_o that_o it_o be_v not_o indeed_o to_o be_v expect_v that_o recusant_n will_v ever_o become_v a_o party_n to_o such_o a_o action_n though_o no_o way_n concern_v in_o conscience_n not_o to_o own_o those_o who_o their_o sovereign_n appoint_v for_o governor_n of_o such_o a_o debate_n not_o because_o there_o will_v be_v any_o appearance_n that_o thereby_o they_o shall_v own_v they_o for_o their_o superior_n but_o because_o we_o find_v they_o not_o dispose_v to_o own_o the_o obligation_n of_o their_o christianity_n require_v they_o to_o concur_v to_o it_o upon_o those_o term_n to_o be_v more_o ancient_a than_o any_o obligation_n of_o their_o spiritual_a superior_n to_o the_o contrary_n for_o if_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n take_v place_n before_o the_o authority_n of_o any_o superior_n provide_v for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o it_o then_o be_v every_o christian_a oblige_v to_o the_o due_a ground_n and_o term_n of_o it_o before_o the_o authority_n of_o superior_n and_o therefore_o can_v refuse_v they_o tender_v by_o a_o part_n though_o refuse_v by_o a_o great_a part_n and_o therefore_o can_v refuse_v that_o trial_n which_o be_v the_o due_a mean_n to_o bring_v they_o to_o light_n though_o his_o superior_n refuse_v it_o and_o therefore_o their_o refusal_n can_v be_v no_o bar_n to_o the_o effect_n of_o the_o action_n once_o ground_v upon_o a_o supposition_n enforce_v the_o trial_n by_o the_o scripture_n expound_v by_o
be_v surcease_v in_o church_n and_o according_o i_o do_v acknowledge_v that_o compare_v the_o benefit_n reasonable_o to_o be_v expect_v from_o the_o use_n of_o they_o with_o the_o abuse_n to_o which_o experience_n have_v discover_v they_o to_o be_v subject_a i_o see_v no_o cause_n why_o the_o use_n of_o they_o may_v not_o be_v forbear_v upon_o such_o a_o reason_n as_o may_v be_v effectual_a to_o unite_v we_o in_o a_o rule_n bound_v the_o reformation_n which_o we_o profess_v upon_o the_o ground_n of_o the_o common_a christianity_n in_o all_o particular_n the_o reason_n be_v because_o the_o have_v of_o they_o be_v not_o a_o necessary_a mean_n to_o that_o instruction_n or_o devotion_n which_o be_v propose_v for_o the_o end_n of_o they_o and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n be_v acknowledge_v by_o all_o the_o reformation_n to_o have_v be_v the_o occasion_n of_o abuse_n the_o prevent_v whereof_o will_v require_v that_o care_n and_o diligence_n which_o the_o forbear_n of_o they_o will_v spare_v but_o see_v it_o have_v appear_v no_o breach_n upon_o christianity_n to_o have_v they_o in_o church_n and_o that_o the_o abuse_n which_o may_v reasonable_o be_v apprehend_v by_o have_v they_o to_o the_o purpose_n specify_v be_v of_o no_o consequence_n in_o comparison_n with_o that_o benefit_n which_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n procure_v it_o will_v never_o be_v lawful_a to_o enjoin_v this_o forbearance_n without_o declare_v that_o it_o signify_v not_o that_o they_o be_v hold_v unlawful_a or_o that_o we_o hold_v ourselves_o bind_v to_o depart_v from_o unity_n with_o the_o church_n rather_o than_o endure_v they_o for_o see_v the_o lutheran_n do_v use_v they_o in_o a_o great_a measure_n for_o the_o reason_n specify_v if_o the_o unite_n of_o we_o with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o reformation_n upon_o the_o due_a ground_n and_o term_n hitherto_o require_v shall_v depend_v upon_o a_o reasonable_a compliance_n in_o that_o particular_a it_o be_v manifest_a that_o it_o will_v be_v a_o sufficient_a reason_n to_o oblige_v we_o to_o the_o same_o and_o therefore_o much_o more_o if_o a_o general_a reunion_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n shall_v come_v to_o depend_v upon_o such_o a_o compliance_n the_o consequence_n of_o this_o instance_n may_v be_v the_o mean_n to_o inform_v those_o that_o be_v capable_a what_o the_o reason_n of_o unity_n may_v oblige_v we_o to_o abate_v of_o that_o which_o we_o take_v to_o be_v for_o the_o best_a in_o matter_n of_o less_o consequence_n that_o the_o unvaluable_a benefit_n of_o it_o may_v be_v obtain_v in_o this_o estate_n when_o the_o protection_n of_o sovereign_a power_n render_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n so_o necessary_a so_o effectual_a to_o the_o salvation_n of_o all_o for_o on_o the_o other_o side_n the_o interruption_n of_o it_o be_v that_o which_o render_v that_o same_o salvation_n questionable_a by_o the_o difficulty_n which_o it_o creat_v of_o observe_v the_o duty_n of_o a_o christian_a as_o a_o christian_a by_o the_o impossibility_n rather_o than_o the_o difficulty_n which_o it_o procure_v of_o observe_v the_o duty_n of_o a_o christian_a as_o a_o member_n of_o the_o church_n which_o the_o breach_n of_o unity_n allow_v not_o due_a conduct_n to_o understand_v to_o fortify_v the_o necessity_n of_o the_o proposition_n that_o i_o answer_v a_o objection_n for_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n answer_v make_v i_o will_v here_o propose_v a_o objection_n in_o behalf_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n against_o the_o validity_n of_o our_o ordination_n which_o i_o have_v always_o take_v to_o have_v weight_n and_o difficulty_n in_o it_o though_o other_o do_v not_o seem_v to_o value_v it_o for_o the_o answer_v of_o this_o objection_n will_v help_v to_o justify_v the_o offence_n to_o be_v take_v and_o not_o give_v that_o may_v come_v by_o the_o liberty_n which_o here_o i_o use_v the_o succession_n of_o our_o bishop_n derive_v itself_o by_o ordination_n of_o three_o bishop_n which_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o apostle_n authorize_v but_o the_o canon_n of_o nic●a_n require_v far_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o each_o province_n whereby_o it_o appear_v that_o ordination_n by_o two_o or_o three_o bishop_n be_v allow_v by_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o apostle_n upon_o presumption_n that_o the_o suffragant_o of_o each_o province_n concur_v in_o allow_v the_o act_n of_o their_o fellow_n which_o presumption_n cease_v in_o our_o case_n because_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o suffragant_n do_v not_o consent_v to_o the_o consecration_n of_o our_o bishop_n but_o declare_v against_o it_o be_v therefore_o displace_v by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o sword_n decide_v for_o the_o lesser_a part_n against_o the_o great_a which_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o church_n enable_v not_o to_o do_v whereupon_o it_o be_v argue_v that_o the_o secular_a power_n be_v not_o able_a to_o authorise_v our_o reformation_n as_o patron_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o canon_n of_o it_o to_o fortify_v the_o objection_n i_o allege_v the_o case_n of_o novatianus_n who_o be_v consecrate_v bishop_n of_o rome_n by_o three_o bishop_n and_o yet_o his_o consecration_n be_v schismatical_a because_o against_o cornelius_n consecrate_a by_o sixteen_o so_o the_o ordination_n of_o majorinus_n that_o be_v first_o consecrate_v bishop_n of_o carthage_n against_o caecilianus_n for_o a_o head_n to_o the_o schism_n of_o the_o donatist_n be_v just_o count_v schismatical_a though_o it_o be_v make_v by_o a_o number_n more_o than_o sufficient_a of_o bishop_n due_o ordain_v which_o i_o doubt_v not_o may_v be_v find_v in_o other_o schism_n i_o answer_v that_o the_o novatian_o have_v nothing_o to_o charge_v the_o church_n with_o but_o the_o readmit_v of_o those_o that_o have_v fall_v away_o in_o time_n of_o persecution_n upon_o penance_n the_o donatist_n nothing_o but_o that_o they_o who_o have_v ordain_v caecilianus_n be_v apostate_n though_o they_o be_v prove_v to_o be_v otherwise_o by_o several_a trial_n which_o they_o will_v never_o rest_v satisfy_v with_o as_o for_o all_o the_o rest_n though_o both_o sect_n follow_v the_o faith_n and_o the_o order_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n yet_o they_o both_o rebaptise_v all_o those_o who_o they_o reduce_v to_o themselves_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o it_o as_o count_v all_o the_o church_n apostate_n for_o communicate_v with_o those_o who_o they_o count_v apostate_n be_v this_o our_o case_n do_v we_o find_v no_o fault_n with_o the_o doctrine_n or_o with_o the_o law_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n wherein_o sovereign_n might_n find_v themselves_o bind_v to_o right_a both_o themselves_o and_o their_o subject_n notwithstanding_o the_o dissent_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n for_o though_o the_o rule_n of_o succession_n by_o ordination_n of_o bishop_n bear_v they_o not_o out_o in_o it_o though_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n regular_o depend_v upon_o the_o force_n of_o that_o rule_n yet_o see_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n fail_v of_o the_o end_n for_o which_o god_n ordain_v it_o unless_o it_o preserve_v the_o christianity_n which_o it_o suppose_v entire_a as_o well_o in_o the_o public_a service_n of_o god_n as_o in_o the_o profession_n and_o conversation_n of_o christian_n it_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v take_v for_o a_o departure_n from_o that_o unity_n that_o it_o be_v restore_v without_o that_o authority_n which_o regular_o be_v provide_v to_o preserve_v it_o for_o the_o consent_n of_o all_o other_o estate_n of_o the_o kingdom_n in_o that_o ground_n and_o upon_o those_o term_n which_o be_v to_o take_v place_n before_o the_o authority_n of_o those_o that_o dissent_n will_v abundant_o justify_v the_o validity_n of_o those_o ordination_n which_o declare_v a_o intent_n of_o minister_a the_o office_n according_a to_o the_o due_a ground_n and_o term_n which_o they_o suppose_v and_o therefore_o it_o will_v not_o be_v so_o visible_a when_o that_o ground_n and_o those_o term_n be_v not_o so_o visible_a and_o upon_o these_o term_n be_v the_o christian_a people_n of_o this_o kingdom_n bind_v to_o own_o and_o to_o authorise_v they_o in_o their_o order_n notwithstanding_o that_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o suffragant_n refuse_v they_o their_o concurrence_n to_o the_o same_o and_o if_o the_o change_n that_o be_v make_v be_v such_o in_o matter_n of_o great_a weight_n the_o case_n will_v be_v the_o same_o though_o it_o fail_v of_o the_o rule_n in_o some_o matter_n of_o less_o consequence_n and_o upon_o these_o term_n i_o admit_v the_o plea_n of_o the_o reformation_n schism●tick●_n that_o which_o excuse_v the_o reform_a church_n extend_v not_o to_o our_o schism●tick●_n that_o succession_n of_o doctrine_n be_v of_o more_o consequence_n than_o succession_n of_o person_n not_o allow_v their_o mistake_n in_o think_v the_o order_n of_o bishop_n the_o supporter_n of_o antichrist_n for_o it_o be_v evident_a to_o he_o that_o will_v use_v his_o five_o sense_n that_o the_o
greatness_n of_o the_o pope_n for_o which_o they_o will_v have_v he_o to_o be_v antichrist_n stand_v as_o well_o by_o usurp_a upon_o the_o bishop_n as_o upon_o the_o crown_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v a_o spice_n of_o madness_n in_o our_o puritan_n to_o proceed_v upon_o their_o example_n to_o ordination_n without_o and_o against_o their_o bishop_n either_o by_o presbyter_n or_o by_o congregation_n whereas_o they_o who_o can_v not_o obtain_v ordination_n from_o bishop_n because_o they_o profess_v the_o reformation_n may_v more_o just_o think_v themselves_o tie_v to_o proceed_v neglect_v that_o which_o they_o can_v not_o have_v but_o trust_v in_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n that_o see_v the_o abuse_n of_o the_o church_n be_v gross_a and_o visible_a and_o palpable_a the_o zeal_n of_o god_n house_n which_o carry_v man_n to_o reform_v they_o before_o they_o be_v agree_v upon_o all_o that_o be_v to_o be_v restore_v instead_o of_o they_o render_v the_o reformation_n imperfect_a as_o it_o be_v effectual_a to_o salvation_n notwithstanding_o that_o they_o may_v have_v fail_v in_o matter_n of_o less_o consequence_n especial_o consider_v that_o particular_a christian_n who_o be_v not_o able_a to_o judge_v of_o the_o public_a concernment_n of_o the_o church_n may_v be_v able_a to_o see_v the_o abuse_n thereof_o and_o to_o reform_v their_o own_o life_n and_o conversation_n by_o that_o conduct_n which_o a_o imperfect_a reformation_n may_v furnish_v not_o doubt_v in_o the_o mean_a time_n that_o this_o imperfection_n be_v the_o loss_n of_o a_o innumerable_a number_n of_o soul_n as_o well_o as_o the_o abuse_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v and_o therefore_o think_v myself_o tie_v to_o say_v so_o that_o all_o public_a person_n of_o what_o quality_n soever_o in_o church_n or_o commonwealth_n in_o all_o the_o several_a quarter_n of_o christendom_n may_v be_v stir_v up_o to_o consider_v how_o much_o it_o concern_v their_o discharge_n at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n that_o the_o reformation_n be_v reduce_v to_o that_o rule_n and_o that_o measure_n in_o every_o point_n which_o the_o ground_n and_o reason_n of_o reformation_n evidence_v for_o than_o shall_v we_o not_o need_v to_o apprehend_v any_o nullity_n upon_o unavoidable_a neglect_n of_o canonical_a proceed_n when_o the_o restore_n of_o christianity_n which_o all_o canon_n presuppose_v and_o tend_v to_o maintain_v justifi_v the_o defect_n of_o it_o in_o one_o for_o obtain_v the_o end_n of_o it_o in_o all_o act_n of_o the_o church_n and_o this_o will_v be_v the_o best_a ground_n for_o hope_n if_o ye●_n there_o be_v any_o hope_n le●t_o to_o propagate_v it_o through_o all_o christendom_n by_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n to_o the_o reunite_a of_o the_o church_n upon_o such_o term_n as_o that_o ground_n and_o reason_n require_v the_o printer_n to_o the_o reader_n it_o be_v think_v fit_a to_o reprint_v herewith_o two_o short_a discourse_n of_o the_o same_o author_n to_o the_o same_o purpose_n the_o one_o concern_v the_o establishment_n pretend_v by_o the_o late_a usurpation_n that_o he_o may_v not_o seem_v now_o to_o disow_v it_o though_o use_v it_o with_o that_o liberty_n which_o all_o man_n use_v in_o new_a edition_n of_o their_o own_o write_n the_o other_o because_o it_o touch_v more_o brief_o some_o of_o those_o head_n which_o be_v more_o perfect_o though_o summary_o comprise_v in_o the_o premise_n be_v publish_v to_o that_o purpose_n upon_o his_o majesty_n happy_a return_n in_o july_n 1660._o a_o letter_n concern_v the_o present_a state_n of_o religion_n among_o we_o under_o the_o act_n of_o establishment_n prosecute_v by_o the_o ordinance_n constitute_v the_o trier_n and_o commissioner_n for_o eject_v of_o scandalous_a minister_n sir_n i_o have_v peruse_v the_o ordinance_n for_o eject_v of_o scandalous_a minister_n and_o find_v it_o likely_a enough_o to_o send_v you_o a_o pastor_n that_o shall_v have_v no_o authority_n from_o the_o church_n have_v think_v it_o necessary_a for_o i_o to_o give_v you_o the_o reason_n of_o that_o opinion_n which_o i_o declare_v unto_o you_o that_o in_o that_o case_n you_o ought_v not_o in_o conscience_n to_o acknowledge_v such_o a_o one_o for_o your_o pastor_n by_o go_v to_o hear_v he_o preach_v and_o seem_v to_o join_v in_o his_o prayer_n much_o less_o to_o receive_v the_o eucharist_n at_o his_o hand_n if_o such_o a_o one_o shall_v be_v so_o audacious_a as_o to_o celebrate_v it_o this_o that_o i_o may_v do_v i_o must_v first_o propose_v the_o case_n as_o it_o be_v state_v by_o those_o act_n which_o pretend_v to_o settle_v religion_n among_o we_o for_o first_o the_o act_n whereby_o the_o present_a government_n be_v establish_v declare_v that_o the_o christian_a religion_n contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n shall_v be_v hold_v forth_o as_o the_o public_a profession_n of_o these_o nation_n and_o that_o such_o as_o profess_v faith_n in_o god_n by_o jesus_n christ_n though_o differ_v from_o this_o profession_n in_o doctrine_n worship_n or_o discipline_n shall_v be_v protect_v in_o the_o exercise_n of_o their_o religion_n except_v popery_n and_o p●elacy_n and_o those_o who_o under_o the_o profession_n of_o christ_n hold_v forth_o and_o practice_v licentiousness_n in_o prosecution_n hereof_o a_o ordinance_n be_v issue_v forth_o give_v commission_n to_o certain_a person_n name_v in_o it_o to_o examine_v and_o try_v all_o that_o have_v come_v into_o possession_n of_o church_n since_o april_n 13._o 1653._o all_o that_o have_v augmentation_n from_o parliament_n all_o that_o shall_v pretend_v to_o come_v into_o church_n that_o shall_v be_v void_a but_o they_o be_v to_o try_v they_o by_o no_o other_o rule_n than_o the_o certificate_n of_o three_o godly_a neighbour_n one_o at_o least_o a_o minister_n concern_v their_o conversation_n in_o godliness_n upon_o their_o own_o knowledge_n and_o the_o judgement_n of_o five_o commissioner_n that_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n be_v in_o their_o heart_n and_o that_o they_o be_v fit_a to_o preach_v in_o further_a prosecution_n hereof_o issue_v forth_o this_o ordinance_n whereby_o no_o man_n be_v make_v scandalous_a for_o his_o judgement_n but_o he_o that_o be_v liable_a to_o the_o act_n against_o blasphemy_n of_o august_n 9_o 1653._o and_o with_o he_o be_v rank_v he_o who_o shall_v frequent_o and_o public_o have_v use_v the_o service_n since_o christmas_n 1653._o whereby_o it_o appear_v that_o those_o who_o have_v declare_v their_o perseverance_n in_o the_o religion_n which_o they_o have_v hitherto_o profess_v by_o read_v the_o service_n be_v therefore_o count_v scandalous_a but_o those_o that_o can_v pass_v the_o trial_n propose_v be_v thereby_o qualify_v in_o law_n to_o be_v pastor_n of_o parish_n and_o consequent_o to_o succeed_v those_o that_o adhere_v to_o the_o christianity_n which_o hitherto_o they_o have_v profess_v be_v cast_v out_o by_o the_o commissioner_n for_o eject_v of_o scandalous_a minister_n in_o the_o first_o place_n then_o i_o say_v that_o the_o effect_n of_o these_o law_n be_v to_o nullify_v and_o make_v void_a one_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n which_o hitherto_o we_o profess_v to_o wit_n the_o belief_n of_o one_o holy_a catholic_n and_o apostolic_a church_n this_o word_n church_n may_v signify_v two_o thing_n first_o only_o the_o whole_a number_n of_o christian_n second_o a_o communion_n and_o corporation_n of_o those_o that_o profess_v true_a christianity_n found_v by_o the_o will_n of_o god_n and_o the_o ministry_n of_o our_o lord_n christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n that_o christian_n when_o they_o profess_v to_o believe_v the_o catholic_n church_n do_v not_o mean_v the_o first_o sense_n that_o there_o be_v in_o the_o world_n a_o number_n of_o man_n that_o profess_v to_o be_v christian_n it_o be_v manifest_a because_o all_o christian_n hope_v to_o be_v save_v by_o their_o faith_n but_o they_o can_v hope_v to_o be_v save_v by_o believe_v that_o which_o they_o see_v now_o all_o man_n see_v that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o company_n of_o man_n in_o the_o world_n therefore_o when_o they_o say_v they_o believe_v the_o catholic_n church_n as_o part_v of_o that_o faith_n whereby_o they_o hope_v to_o be_v save_v they_o do_v not_o profess_v to_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o company_n of_o man_n but_o that_o there_o be_v a_o corporation_n of_o true_a christian_n exclude_v heretic_n and_o schismatic_n and_o that_o they_o hope_v to_o be_v save_v by_o this_o faith_n as_o be_v member_n of_o it_o and_o this_o be_v that_o which_o the_o stile_n of_o the_o holy_a cathelick_n and_o apostolic_a church_n signify_v as_o distinguish_v the_o body_n of_o true_a christian_n to_o wit_n so_o far_o as_o profession_n go_v from_o the_o conventicle_n of_o heretic_n and_o schismatic_n for_o this_o title_n of_o catholic_n will_v signify_v nothing_o if_o heretic_n and_o schismatic_n be_v not_o bar_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n and_o let_v no_o man_n imagine_v that_o
alas_o shall_v man_n confine_v themselves_o to_o that_o which_o the_o generality_n of_o their_o audience_n may_v edify_v by_o in_o their_o christianity_n the_o trade_n will_v be_v obstruct_v for_o let_v i_o free_o say_v the_o undoubted_a truth_n of_o the_o common_a christianity_n which_o no_o sermon_n ought_v to_o exceed_v because_o they_o pretend_v the_o edification_n of_o the_o generality_n of_o christian_n be_v contain_v in_o so_o narrow_a a_o compass_n that_o no_o eloquence_n much_o less_o the_o eloquence_n of_o all_o that_o must_v come_v into_o the_o pulpit_n can_v change_v the_o season_n and_o serve_v of_o it_o so_o as_o to_o make_v it_o agreeable_a to_o man_n palate_n without_o fetch_v in_o matter_n impertinent_a if_o not_o destructive_a to_o the_o common_a christianity_n and_o the_o same_o be_v for_o more_o peremptory_a reason_n to_o be_v say_v of_o arbitrary_a prayer_n for_o the_o very_a posture_n of_o he_o that_o pretend_v to_o prefer_v the_o devotion_n of_o god_n people_n to_o the_o altar_n which_o be_v above_o strong_o impress_v upon_o the_o heart_n of_o simple_a christian_n a_o opinion_n that_o thereby_o they_o discharge_v to_o god_n the_o duty_n which_o he_o require_v at_o their_o hand_n which_o if_o the_o matter_n of_o those_o prayer_n be_v such_o as_o the_o common_a christianity_n require_v they_o may_v do_v indeed_o but_o if_o it_o be_v possible_a that_o rebellion_n slander_n nonsense_n and_o blasphemy_n may_v be_v the_o matter_n of_o they_o as_o well_o as_o christianity_n then_o be_v it_o not_o religion_n but_o superstition_n which_o such_o devotions_n exercise_n nor_o can_v that_o kingdom_n stand_v excuse_v to_o god_n which_o shall_v gratify_v that_o licentiousness_n whereof_o they_o see_v the_o effect_n before_o their_o eye_n all_o reason_n of_o christianity_n concurre_v with_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n to_o witness_v that_o the_o interest_n of_o christianity_n require_v the_o service_n of_o god_n to_o be_v maintain_v and_o exercise_v daily_o yea_o hourly_a be_v it_o possible_a not_o only_o by_o particular_a christian_n but_o by_o assembly_n of_o christian_n so_o far_o as_o the_o business_n of_o the_o world_n will_v give_v leave_n and_o as_o there_o be_v mean_n to_o maintain_v man_n attendance_n upon_o it_o there_o may_v come_v abuse_n in_o the_o order_n the_o form_n the_o matter_n of_o that_o which_o be_v tender_v to_o god_n for_o his_o service_n but_o in_o stead_n of_o reform_v those_o abuse_n to_o take_v away_o the_o mean_n the_o rule_n the_o obligation_n of_o such_o meeting_n be_v mere_a sacrilege_n in_o destroy_v under_o pretence_n of_o reform_v god_n church_n and_o though_o i_o charge_v no_o such_o design_n upon_o those_o who_o maintain_v the_o obligation_n of_o the_o sabbath_n to_o consist_v in_o two_o sermon_n yet_o i_o do_v maintain_v it_o be_v manifest_a to_o common_a reason_n that_o the_o form_n which_o that_o opinion_n introduce_v necessary_o tend_v to_o that_o effect_n strange_a it_o be_v that_o a_o nation_n capable_a of_o sense_n in_o a_o age_n improve_v by_o learning_n shall_v be_v entangle_v with_o the_o superstition_n of_o so_o vain_a a_o imagination_n that_o god_n by_o the_o same_o four_o commandment_n shall_v oblige_v both_o jew_n to_o keep_v the_o saturday_n and_o christian_n the_o sunday_n especial_o no_o man_n dare_v to_o maintain_v that_o both_o be_v or_o be_v tie_v to_o the_o same_o measure_n of_o rest_v and_o therefore_o though_o rather_o than_o cross_v the_o stream_n of_o such_o a_o superstition_n for_o let_v no_o man_n think_v that_o all_o superstition_n can_v be_v shut_v out_o of_o god_n church_n there_o may_v be_v reason_n to_o live_v conformable_a to_o the_o rule_n which_o such_o superstition_n produce_v yet_o provide_v that_o the_o ecclesiastical_a law_n of_o england_n agree_v with_o the_o law_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v not_o abate_v so_o as_o to_o stick_v a_o evident_a mark_n of_o schism_n upon_o the_o church_n of_o england_n for_o the_o law_n that_o be_v recommend_v the_o celebration_n of_o the_o eucharist_n upon_o all_o sunday_n and_o festival_n but_o command_v the_o service_n to_o be_v use_v as_o well_o on_o festival_n and_o fast_a day_n as_o upon_o sunday_n beside_o the_o week_n day_n at_o the_o public_a assembly_n of_o respective_a congregation_n to_o change_v this_o order_n for_o two_o sermon_n on_o the_o sunday_n alone_o what_o be_v it_o but_o to_o renounce_v the_o whole_a church_n for_o the_o love_n of_o those_o that_o have_v divide_v from_o the_o church_n of_o england_n upon_o cause_n common_a to_o it_o with_o the_o whole_a church_n they_o that_o will_v have_v the_o reformation_n of_o the_o church_n to_o be_v indeed_o that_o which_o the_o law_n of_o the_o land_n call_v it_o shall_v first_o provide_v a_o course_n to_o be_v establish_v for_o law_n by_o which_o all_o christian_a soul_n who_o have_v equal_a interest_n in_o the_o commonsalvation_n may_v serve_v god_n in_o public_a all_o sunday_n and_o festival_n for_o see_v there_o be_v a_o course_n in_o law_n before_o the_o reformation_n for_o all_o servant_n as_o well_o as_o other_o to_o be_v at_o mass_n all_o sunday_n and_o festival_n and_o the_o church_n be_v enable_v to_o require_v account_n of_o it_o at_o their_o hand_n it_o will_v not_o be_v reformation_n to_o abrogate_v the_o abuse_n of_o the_o mass_n till_o a_o course_n be_v take_v that_o all_o christian_n may_v frequent_v that_o which_o shall_v appear_v to_o be_v indeed_o the_o service_n of_o god_n instead_o of_o the_o mass_n let_v no_o preacher_n flatter_v themselves_o with_o a_o opinion_n that_o they_o shall_v ever_o make_v christian_n so_o perfect_o jew_n as_o to_o persuade_v they_o to_o dress_v no_o meat_n on_o the_o sunday_n if_o servant_n must_v stay_v at_o home_n to_o dress_v meat_n on_o sunday_n and_o for_o other_o occasion_n they_o must_v stay_v at_o home_n beside_o that_o will_v not_o the_o way_n to_o repair_v that_o breach_n be_v to_o enjoin_v several_a assembly_n in_o all_o parish_n church_n upon_o all_o sunday_n morning_n that_o several_a person_n of_o several_a estate_n and_o quality_n may_v have_v opportunity_n to_o attend_v the_o public_a service_n of_o god_n at_o several_a hour_n of_o the_o same_o sunday_n and_o holiday_n for_o though_o i_o understand_v very_o well_o that_o this_o will_v impose_v upon_o the_o church_n that_o be_v upon_o my_o brethren_n of_o the_o clergy_n a_o great_a burden_n than_o a_o afternoon_n meal_n of_o a_o sermon_n which_o all_o man_n know_v be_v furnish_v of_o the_o cold_a meat_n of_o the_o forenoon_n yet_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o the_o world_n shall_v be_v clear_v of_o this_o imposture_n that_o reign_v that_o two_o sermon_n every_o sunday_n be_v the_o due_a way_n of_o keep_v the_o sabbath_n among_o christian_n or_o of_o advance_v god_n public_a service_n i_o will_v not_o here_o dispute_v that_o the_o lent-fast_a be_v institute_v by_o the_o apostle_n but_o this_o i_o maintain_v to_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o fast_a afore_o the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n be_v and_o be_v as_o ancient_a as_o the_o feast_n of_o his_o resurrection_n and_o that_o more_o ancient_a than_o the_o keep_n of_o all_o lord_n day_n in_o the_o year_n be_v mere_o the_o reflection_n of_o that_o one_o all_o the_o week_n of_o the_o year_n nor_o will_v any_o man_n that_o know_v what_o he_o say_v ever_o question_n that_o the_o enlarge_n of_o it_o to_o forty_o day_n be_v a_o just_a law_n voluntary_o undertake_v by_o the_o whole_a church_n not_o to_o be_v condemn_v without_o the_o like_a mark_n of_o schism_n for_o since_o the_o world_n be_v come_v into_o the_o church_n be_v there_o not_o manifest_a reason_n that_o more_o time_n shall_v be_v take_v for_o the_o expiate_a of_o more_o sin_n which_o be_v the_o sin_n of_o more_o people_n to_o prepare_v as_o well_o the_o elder_a to_o renew_v their_o christianity_n by_o communicate_v at_o easter_n as_o the_o young_a to_o be_v confirm_v and_o come_v first_o to_o the_o communion_n at_o easter_n now_o they_o be_v baptize_v infant_n which_o in_o former_a age_n be_v the_o time_n of_o their_o first_o come_v to_o baptism_n as_o for_o the_o wednesday_n and_o friday_n if_o we_o shall_v not_o enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n unless_o our_o righteousness_n exceed_v the_o righteousness_n of_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n and_o if_o it_o be_v evident_a as_o evident_a it_o be_v that_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n prescribe_v munday_n and_o thursdays_n for_o day_n of_o less_o solemn_a assembly_n than_o the_o sabbath_n how_o shall_v we_o enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n if_o in_o despite_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n which_o have_v hitherto_o use_v wednesdays_n and_o friday_n in_o lieu_n of_o munday_n and_o thursdays_n use_v by_o the_o synagogue_n we_o void_a the_o law_n of_o england_n by_o which_o they_o be_v in_o force_n of_o the_o ceremony_n the_o same_o